ARBEITEN ZUR LITERATUR U N D G E S C H I C H T E DES H ELLEN I S T I S C H E N J U D E N T U M S HERAUSGEGEBEN K.
H.
VON
R E N G S T O R F
IN V E R B I N D U N G
MIT
J . DANIELOU, G . DELLING, S . JELLICOE, H . R . MOEHRING, B . NOACK, H . M . ORLINSKY, H . RIESENFELD, A . SCHALIT,
H.
SCHRECKENBERG, A.
W . C. VAN
WlKGREN
III R I C H A R D
A.
B A E R
JR.
PHILO'S USE OF T H E
CATEGORIES
MALE AND FEMALE
L E I D E N E . J.
B R I L L
1970
UNNIK,
P H I L O ' S USE OF T H E CATEGORIES MALE A N D FEMALE BY
R I C H A R D A. B A E R ,
L E I D E N
E . J.
BRILL 1970
JR.
TABLE
OF
CONTENTS
PREFACE
xi
I. INTRODUCTION: PHILO'S METHOD AND BASIC CONCERNS
I
A . Brief Survey of the Literature
i
B . Philo's G o a l and M e t h o d
4
1. Philo's Soteriological Orientation
4
2. Philo as a Philosopher
5
3. Philo as an E x e g e t e of Scripture
6
4. Philo's Use of the T e r m s MuOo; and MocrrYjpiov .
8
I I . THE CATEGORIES MALE AND FEMALE IN RELATIONSHIP TO PHILO'S UNDERSTANDING OF THE NATURE OF MAN A. Man's Dual Nature B. Man's
Higher
14 14
N a t u r e : the
R e a l m of the A s e x u a l
1. T h e Oneness and Indivisibility of the
16
Rational
S o u l ; the Male-Female Polarity
16
2. T h e Categories Male and F e m a l e in Reference t o the Man Created after the I m a g e of G o d Referred t o in D e Opificio M u n d i 134
20
a. T h e P r o b l e m
20
b . Philo
Uses
Both
Genesis
1:27
and
2:7
to
E s t a b l i s h the G o d - l i k e N a t u r e of M a n ' s H i g h e r Nous
21
c. T h e Sequence of Creation in D e Opificio M u n d i d. Exegesis of D e Opificio M u n d i 134 ff
26 29
C. M a n ' s L o w e r N a t u r e : the R e a l m of Male and F e m a l e
35
1. T h e IIp6ko<; "Av6poyrco<; ( D e Opificio M u n d i 136 ff.)
35
2. M a n ' s Present Situation a. Man S y m b o l i z e s N o o ; , W o m a n MaQfjmi;
38 . .
38
b . Philo's Use of F e m a l e T e r m i n o l o g y in R e l a t i o n ship t o his E v a l u a t i o n of M a n ' s Irrational S o u l
40
I I I . T H E CATEGORIES MALE AND FEMALE IN RELATIONSHIP TO SOTERIOLOGY AND PROPHETIC INSPIRATION . . . .
45
A . B e c o m i n g Male
45
B. Becoming One
49
C. B e c o m i n g a Virgin
51
TABLE OF CONTENTS D . A Comparison o f the Contexts in w h i c h the Motifs o f B e c o m i n g Male, B e c o m i n g One, and
Becoming a
Virgin O c c u r
54
E. The Divine Impregnation
o f the Soul
55
I V . CONCLUSION A. Summary
65 of Preceding Discussion
65
B . Correlations w i t h Specific Gnostic T e x t s
66
1. T h e Use o f the Categories Male and F e m a l e
in
Gnostic Writings
66
2. B e c o m i n g Male
69
3. B e c o m i n g One
72
4. B e c o m i n g a Virgin C. Final
Observations
75 and
Suggested
Correlations:
Philo, the Gnostics, the N e w T e s t a m e n t , C o n t e m p o rary Judaism
76
1. T h e Evaluation of the Created W o r l d 2. E s c h a t o l o g y
and
the
Problem
o f the
76 Present
Realization of the Telos of M a n ' s E x i s t e n c e
. .
APPENDIXES Appendix Mundi and
81 A.
The
Relationship
L e g u m Allegoria in
between Reference
De to
Opificio the
Man
Created after the I m a g e o f G o d Appendix
78
B. T h e
Use
of the
81 Term
Androgynous
in
Reference t o the Generic Man of L e g u m Allegoria II : 13 and D e Opificio M u n d i 76 Appendix
83
C. A d d i t i o n a l N o t e s o n Philo's U n d e r s t a n d i n g
of the Soul Appendix
84 D. A d d i t i o n a l N o t e s o n Philo's Use of
A n d r o g y n o u s Man Motif and his A c c o u n t of the
the
Creation
of W o m a n Appendix
87 E. A d d i t i o n a l
Notes
on
Philo's
Attitude
T o w a r d s Man's Irrational Soul and the Created W o r l d .
89
1. Positive Orientation t o w a r d s M a n ' s L o w e r N a t u r e and the Created W o r l d
89
2. N e g a t i v e Orientation t o w a r d s Man's L o w e r N a t u r e and the Created W o r l d
91
IX Appendix
F. A N o t e o n Sexual Intercourse and
Pro
creation in Philo's Writings Appendix
94
G. T h e E x p o s i t i o n in Contrast t o the A l l e g o r y
and the Questions and Answers in Relationship t o their Evaluation
of the Created W o r l d
Appendix
95
H. T h e Influence of Hellenistic P r o p h e t i s m o n
P h i l o ' s Use of Virgin T e r m i n o l o g y in Connection w i t h the Divine
Impregnation
Motif:
Leisegang's B o o k Pneuma Appendix
I.
A
Critical
Note
on
Hans
Hagion
96
Philo's Description of the T h e r a p e u t a e in
D e Vita C o n t e m p l a t i v a in Reference t o the Categories Male and F e m a l e Appendix
98 J. Sexual Intercourse and Prayer
101
BIBLIOGRAPHY
103
INDEX OF REFERENCES
107
INDEX OF SUBJECTS AND NAMES
113
PREFACE This m o n o g r a p h on Philo w a s originally planned as b a c k g r o u n d material for a s t u d y I i n t e n d e d on Paul's attitude t o w a r d s w o m e n , particularly
as reflected in such passages as Galatians 3:28
I Corinthians
and
1 1 : 1 1 . L i k e the Church of the H o l y Sepulchre in
Jerusalem, m y investigation into Philo grew a n d g r e w until it claimed the space of an entire b o o k rather than the single chapter I h a d p r o j e c t e d . I saw that the categories male and female o c c u p i e d m o r e than an incidental p l a c e in Philo's thinking, a n d that m u c h of his t h e o l o g y c o u l d b e illuminated b y an understanding of his use of these terms. H o p e f u l l y , this investigation also accomplishes s o m e t h i n g of its original intent b y contributing
to the
further
c o m p r e h e n s i o n of a limited area of Paul's thinking. T h e reader will see that in the c o n c l u d i n g chapter an a t t e m p t is m a d e to s h o w such possible relevance. It is indeed unfortunate that a specialized s t u d y such as this gives little feeling for Philo the m a n . B r i d g i n g t w o cultures, t w o w a y s of thinking a b o u t G o d and man, Philo's t h o u g h t u n d o u b t e d l y reflects certain inconsistencies. T h e r e is a c o n s i s t e n c y of p u r p o s e in Philo's life, h o w e v e r , that b e c o m e s clear w h e n o n e takes time to live with his writings o v e r a p e r i o d of years. Making extensive use of the m e t h o d of allegorical interpretation, he d e v o t e s all of his great energy and enthusiasm
to the task of m a k i n g sense of
J u d a i s m a n d the Jewish Scriptures in the Hellenistic milieu of first c e n t u r y A l e x a n d r i a . Quite apart from whether or n o t w e can a c c e p t Philo's m e t h o d or results, w e can o n l y admire his d e e p c o m m i t m e n t to a great cause. I o w e a special debt of gratitude t o Professor Krister of H a r v a r d
Stendahl
University for his c o n t i n u i n g e n c o u r a g e m e n t in this
undertaking. H e has patiently read and criticized m y manuscript a n d offered m a n y helpful suggestions. A l s o I wish t o t h a n k Professor H e l m u t K o e s t e r of H a r v a r d and the late Professor A r t h u r D a r b y N o c k . E a c h in his o w n w a y taught m e to respect the original text of Philo and n o t t o turn t o o q u i c k l y to s e c o n d a r y literature. Particular thanks are d u e H a r v a r d University Press a n d W i l l i a m H . H e i n e m a n n L t d . for permission t o q u o t e extensively from the Greek text and the English translation of the Loeb Classical
Library
PREFACE
XII
edition of Philo. T h e reader s h o u l d note, h o w e v e r , that changes h a v e been m a d e in the L o e b translation w h e r e v e r a m o r e literal rendering
of the Greek w a s considered necessary. I m u s t
also
express appreciation t o H a r p e r a n d R o w Publishers and A . R . Mowbray
& Co. L t d .
for permitting
m e to r e p r o d u c e
passages f r o m the English translation of The Gospel
of
several Philip,
edited b y R . M c L . W i l s o n , a n d to E . J. Brill for letting m e q u o t e from the English translation of The Gospel
of Thomas,
edited b y
A . Guillaumont, et al. R i c h a r d A . BAER, Jr. Richmond,
Indiana
O c t o b e r 18, 1968
CHAPTER
ONE
INTRODUCTION: PHILO'S METHOD AND BASIC CONCERNS A. BRIEF SURVEY OF THE LITERATURE I n spite of the i m m e n s e a m o u n t of l a b o r that has b e e n d e v o t e d t o the s t u d y of Philo during the past o n e h u n d r e d years, there is t o d a y n o generally a c c e p t e d interpretation of his writings. A d m i t t e d l y , scholars h a v e c o m e to agree o n m a n y of the details of his thinking, but in reference to his m e t h o d and basic c o n c e r n s there is still little a c c o r d . On the o n e hand, W o l f s o n argues that P h i l o was " a p h i l o s o p h e r in the g r a n d m a n n e r , "
1
who demonstrated
his great
intellectual
ability b o t h in his critical e v a l u a t i o n of the w o r k s of o t h e r p h i l o s ophers and
in his striking out o n a n e w p a t h of his o w n . Philo
demonstrates
his originality
in e v e r y area of his p h i l o s o p h i c a l
inquiry, a n d has left us w i t h a s y s t e m of p h i l o s o p h y " w h i c h is consistent, coherent, a n d free from c o n t r a d i c t i o n s , all of it b e i n g b a s e d o n certain fundamental
principles."
2
I n d e e d , in spite of the
fact that P h i l o left b e h i n d h i m n o official g r o u p of disciples, "his teachings b e c a m e the d o m i n a n t influence in E u r o p e a n p h i l o s o p h y for well-nigh seventeen c e n t u r i e s . "
3
W o l f s o n maintains further that
all the really significant r o o t s of P h i l o ' s thinking are Jewish, a n d w h a t e v e r Hellenistic influence w e find in his writings is " i n language o n l y ; not in religious belief o r c u l t . "
4
A t the o t h e r e x t r e m e from W o l f s o n s t a n d P a s c h e r a n d G o o d e 5
n o u g h . D r a w i n g at m a n y p o i n t s o n the w o r k of P a s c h e r , G o o d e n o u g h sees P h i l o as o n e w h o is little interested in the technical p r o b l e m s of p h i l o s o p h y as such. Philo is c o n v e r s a n t w i t h m u c h of c o n t e m p o r a r y p h i l o s o p h y and, in particular, draws h e a v i l y o n P l a t o n i s m 1
ity,
H a r r y A . W o l f s o n , Philo. and
Islam
2
Wolfson,
3
Wolfson, I, 1 1 5 .
4
Wolfson,
5
Cf. e s p e c i a l l y
Wiedergeburt
ALGHJ, III
Foundations
of Philosophy
in Judaism,
Christian
(1947), I, 1 1 4 . I,
114-15.
I, 13. und
J o s e p h P a s c h e r , H B A S I A I K N O A O S Der Vergottung
bei Philon
von
Alexandreia
Konigsweg
zu
(1931).
1
2
INTRODUCTION: PHILO'S METHOD AND BASIC CONCERNS
and
Neo-Pythagoreanism.
But
his
fundamental
orientation
is
religious rather than philosophical,- his k n o w l e d g e of p h i l o s o p h y serving m a i n l y t o illuminate
and
support
his religious
under
standing. A c c o r d i n g t o G o o d e n o u g h , Philo is d e e p l y i n d e b t e d t o the Greek m y s t e r y religions of his d a y and was particularly influenced b y O r p h i s m , the cult of Isis and Osiris, and b y the dualism of I r a n . T h e r e is in his writings " a n elaborate transformation
1
of Judaism
i n t o a m y s t i c p h i l o s o p h y , " w h o s e secret teachings were e m b o d i e d in the writings o f the great Moses a n d w h o s e cultic
hierophants
2
were Moses and the H i g h Priest. B u t this transformation is n o t t o b e u n d e r s t o o d as o n l y a " v e n e e r " or " o n e of w o r d s o n l y " ; it resulted in " a J u d a i s m so t h o r o u g h l y paganized t h a t its o b j e c t i v e s were those of Hellenistic m y s t e r i e s . "
3
Indeed, the radical cleft
b e t w e e n the material and immaterial w o r l d s — a t h o r o u g h l y n o n Jewish motif—is the basic presupposition of the Philonic M y s t e r y , a n d thus it is understandable t h a t Philo's m o s t significant departure from n o r m a t i v e J u d a i s m "lies in the fact t h a t h e t o o k t o his heart the pagan idea of s a l v a t i o n ; t h a t is, t h a t the spirit b e released from the
flesh in order t o return t o its spiritual s o u r c e in G o d . "
4
G o o d e n o u g h frequently asserts, h o w e v e r , that Philo never t h o u g h t of himself as breaking a w a y from the religion o f his fathers w i t h its central emphasis o n the T o r a h . In his o w n m i n d he was from first t o last a l o y a l J e w w h o presented t o his c o n t e m p o r a r i e s the true J u d a i s m .
5
Most recent interpretations of Philo h a v e n o t been as a m b i t i o u s as
those
of W o l f s o n
and
Goodenough. Such a b o o k
as
Jean
Danielou's Philon d'A lexandrie (1958), for e x a m p l e , is, as G o o d e n o u g h points o u t , m a i n l y a restatement of the w o r k of earlier scholars a n d thus " c a n n o t b e considered a m e t h o d o l o g i c a l c o n t r i b u t i o n t o the
1
E r w i n R . G o o d e n o u g h , By
Judaism
Light,
Light:
The Mystic
Gospel
of
Hellenistic
( 1 9 3 5 ) , p . 263. S e e a l s o t h e d i s c u s s i o n of t h e A m e s h a S p e n t a s a n d
the L i g h t - S t r e a m
on pp. 1 2 - 1 5 .
2
Goodenough,
p.
3
Goodenough,
p. 263.
4
Goodenough,
5
Introduction,
An
263. Introduction
to Philo
Judaeus
(2nd
ed.;
1962),
p. 13.
p . 160. S y s t e m a t i c a l l y t o t a k e issue w i t h either W o l f s o n or
G o o d e n o u g h , o r t o s u m m a r i z e a n d c o m m e n t o n o t h e r m a j o r P h i l o s t u d i e s of t h e p a s t o n e h u n d r e d y e a r s lies o u t s i d e t h e s c o p e of t h i s s t u d y . O n l y w h e r e p a r t i c u l a r a s p e c t s of t h e s e v a r i o u s i n t e r p r e t a t i o n s are i m m e d i a t e l y r e l e v a n t t o t h e s u b j e c t m a t t e r of t h i s s t u d y will t h e y b e c o n s i d e r e d c r i t i c a l l y .
BRIEF SURVEY OF THE LITERATURE 1
s t u d y of P h i l o . "
3
A c t u a l l y , m o s t of w h a t is being written o n Philo
t o d a y is in the f o r m of b a c k g r o u n d material for the s t u d y of the N e w T e s t a m e n t a n d the E a r l y Church. It usually appears as
a
chapter or part of a c h a p t e r within a larger w o r k . I n a few cases, such as J a c o b Jervell's s t u d y of Philo's use of etxwv [Imago Gen. i , 26 f. im Spdtjudentum, Briefen,
in der Gnosis und in den
Dei.
paulinischen
i960), this " b a c k g r o u n d " a p p r o a c h has c o n t r i b u t e d signifi
c a n t l y t o our k n o w l e d g e of Philo, b u t o n the w h o l e these studies h a v e s i m p l y repeated the j u d g m e n t s of earlier scholars. S a n d m e l ' s Philo's Abraham
Place
in Jewish
Literature
Die Lichtterminologie tischen
Schriften
in Judaism.
bei Philon
A
Study
Samuel
of Conceptions
(1956) a n d F r a n z - N o r b e r t von Alexandrien
of
Klein's
und in den
herme-
(1962) are a m o n g the o n l y recent b o o k s t h a t are
m o r e directly centered o n Philo. N o t a few writers h a v e referred t o Philo's use of male a n d female terminology, but
t h e y h a v e t o u c h e d o n this material o n l y in
cidentally and h a v e n o t tried t o s h o w h o w it functions in relation ship t o the totality of his t h o u g h t . T h e three b o o k s that c o m e closest t o this are G o o d e n o u g h ' s By Light, Light, Pascher's Der and H . S t r a t h m a n n ' s Geschichte
der friihchristlichen
Konigsweg,
Askese
(1914).
B u t in each of these v o l u m e s the focus is elsewhere. G o o d e n o u g h a n d Pascher are c o n c e r n e d with the categories male a n d female m a i n l y in terms of h o w t h e y function in the Philonic Mystery, a n d c o n s e q u e n t l y their exegesis of m a n y individual t e x t s stands or falls with
their over-all interpretation of the
Mystery.
Strathmann
t o u c h e s u p o n the male-female t e x t s o n l y insofar as t h e y are related t o the question of asceticism, a n d thus he does n o t deal with m a n y of the m o r e significant passages at all. T h e writings of J a m e s D r u m m o n d (Philo Judaeus; Alexandrian
Philosophy
Emile Brehier d'Alexandrie, und
jiidische
Vollendung (Philo,
in its Development
(Les Idees
philosophiques
or, the
Jewish-
and Completion,
1888),
et religieuses
de
2nded.; 1925), Isaak H e i n e m a n n (Philons Bildung, bei Philo
1932), von
Walther
Alexandrien,
Volker
Philon
griechische
[Fortschritt
1938), a n d
H.
und
Wolfson
1947) h a v e likewise c o n t r i b u t e d indispensably t o m a n y of
the details of this study, although n o n e of t h e m deals with the m a l e female t e r m i n o l o g y as such. Pages 1-47 in V o l k e r ' s m o n o g r a p h c o n t a i n an excellent s u m m a r y of Philo studies u p to the year 1938,
1
Introduction,
p. 19.
INTRODUCTION: PHILO'S METHOD AND BASIC CONCERNS
4
a n d H a r t w i g T h y e n ' s article " D i e P r o b l e m e der neueren Philo F o r s c h u n g , " Theologische
Rundschau,
23 (1955), p p . 230-46, c o v e r s
the p e r i o d from 1938-1955. D r u m m o n d ' s b o o k is n o t frequently m e n t i o n e d in the c o n t e m p o r a r y discussion of P h i l o ; nonetheless it remains o n e of the u n d i s p u t e d classics in the field.
B . PHILO'S GOAL AND METHOD 1. Philo's
Soteriological
Orientation
F o r the m o s t part, it is a p p r o p r i a t e t o describe P h i l o ' s basic 1
orientation as s o t e r i o l o g i c a l . B y this is m e a n t t h a t the great b u l k of his literary a c t i v i t y is o r i e n t a t e d t o w a r d s such questions a s : W h o is G o d ? a n d H o w c a n m a n escape the b o n d s of the material w o r l d of c h a n g e a n d c o r r u p t i o n a n d enter i n t o m y s t i c c o m m u n i o n with G o d ? I n the Exposition
of the Laws,
w h i c h consists of an
e x p l a n a t i o n of a n d a p o l o g y for the Jewish L a w , this soteriological orientation is n o t a l w a y s o b v i o u s b u t is nonetheless still present. G o o d e n o u g h claims this writing was designed t o lead Gentiles i n t o Judaism.
2
O p . M u n d . serves as an i n t r o d u c t i o n t o the
Exposition,
and, as such, explains h o w the creation of the w o r l d a n d of m a n w a s in h a r m o n y w i t h the L a w .
3
I n his writings on Moses a n d
the
Patriarchs, P h i l o shows h o w the L a w is e m b o d i e d in these great 01
figures of o l d w h o are d e s c r i b e d as v6jj.ot e ' f i ^ X -
1
4
A l t h o u g h the
N o t a b l e e x c e p t i o n s are V i t . C o n t . a n d H y p o t h e t . , w h i c h are p a r t s of a
l a r g e r a p o l o g y for t h e J e w s a d d r e s s e d t o G e n t i l e r e a d e r s . See G o o d e n o u g h , Introduction,
p p . 31 ff. A l s o in d e f e n s e of t h e J e w s , b u t m o r e in t h e n a t u r e
of p o l i t i c a l t r a c t s , are F l a c c . a n d L e g . G a i . I n A e t . M u n d . F . H . C o l s o n , G . H . W h i t a k e r , e t al., Philo
(See C o l s o n in
[ L . C . L . ] I X [1941], pp.
172-77
re p r o b l e m of a u t h o r s h i p ) , P r o v . , O m n . P r o b . L i b . , a n d A n i m a l . P h i l o d e f e n d s his o w n p o s i t i o n a g a i n s t o t h e r p h i l o s o p h i c a l 2
Introduction,
3
O p . M u n d . 3. Cf. G o o d e n o u g h , Introduction,
4
See
oc
'i\j.^X i-
c u r r e n t s of t h e
day.
p . 33.
G o o d e n o u g h , Light,
p p . 87-90,
p p . 38-39.
196-97,
for a d i s c u s s i o n
of v6y.oq
T h e P a t r i a r c h s w e r e n o t j u s t e m b o d i m e n t s of t h e w r i t t e n L a w , b u t as v6|j,o!. ^IJUJJUX
01
w e r e in t u n e w i t h t h e d i v i n e L o g o s itself. B e f o r e t h e L a w
w a s p u t in w r i t t e n f o r m b y M o s e s , t h e P a t r i a r c h s l i v e d in a c c o r d w i t h Logos,
the
spiritual
reality
after w h i c h
T h u s it is u n d e r s t a n d a b l e t h a t t h e y
the
receive
written
L a w was
the
patterned.
s u c h h i g h p r a i s e a n d are so
c o n s i s t e n t l y p r e s e n t e d as e x a m p l e s o r m o d e l s of t h e g o o d life. P h i l o l i k e w i s e is a b l e t o e x p r e s s o b e d i e n c e t o t h e L a w in t e r m s of c o n f o r m i t y t o
nature
(axoXouOiav cpuaecoi;; A b r . 6 ) , for u l t i m a t e l y t o l i v e x a r a 9110111 o r x a x a v6|j.ov are i d e n t i c a l
for P h i l o .
Goodenough,
Light,
Cf. O p . M u n d .
Chap.
II.
3 ; see t h e e x t e n s i v e
discussion
in
PHILO'S GOAL AND METHOD c o n c l u s i o n t o the Exposition
5
is lost, G o o d e n o u g h h o l d s t h a t
it
p r o b a b l y consisted of a final e x h o r t a t i o n to the Gentile t o enter i n t o the blessings of J u d a i s m and thus b e c o m e " t h e heir of divine 1
things."
T h e Allegory
of the Laws,
o n c e a m u c h longer w o r k t h a n the
2
e x t a n t eighteen titles, m a y well h a v e b e e n written for those w h o , already familiar with the teachings of the Exposition,
wanted to
a d v a n c e into the deeper meanings of the L a w . Beginning with the s e c o n d chapter of Genesis a n d continuing t o t h e e n d of the b o o k , the Allegory
generally follows the Biblical t e x t verse b y verse. N o t
infrequently, h o w e v e r , Philo digresses into related texts a n d i d e a s . In the Questions
and Answers,
3
a verse b y verse c o m m e n t a r y o n
4
Genesis and E x o d u s , P h i l o presents b o t h the literal a n d the deeper allegorical m e a n i n g of each t e x t . T h e allegorical o n the
interpretations,
whole, closely resemble those of the Allegory,
and
are
similarly directed t o the implied q u e s t i o n : H o w can m a n k n o w G o d ? 2. Philo
as a
Philo's
Philosopher
practical,
relationship
to
soteriological c o n c e r n is seen
p h i l o s o p h y and
in his m e t h o d
both
of
in
his
approaching
Scripture. A s a philosopher, h e is rightly called an eclectic, y e t f r o m this it d o e s n o t follow that he treats other philosophies arbitrarily. W h e r e a s his philosophical v o c a b u l a r y and a great n u m b e r of the details of his p h i l o s o p h y were b o r r o w e d from m a n y different sources, "his philosophical p o s i t i o n , " t o q u o t e G o o d e n o u g h , "is, in principle if n o t in details, quite consistent and h o m o g e n e o u s . "
5
Nonetheless,
P h i l o ' s first c o n c e r n is n o t t o create a n e w p h i l o s o p h y . H e is m a i n l y an e x e g e t e of Scripture w h o intends t o present t h e Scriptural truth in terms of the best philosophical t h o u g h t of his d a y . U n d e r l y i n g this p u r p o s e is the a s s u m p t i o n that the truths of Scripture
and
p h i l o s o p h y ultimately c o i n c i d e , for b o t h h a v e their source in G o d and lead o n e t o the k n o w l e d g e of G o d . 1
Introduction,
2
Cf. a n a l y s i s of L e o p o l d
Philos
Goodenough,
4
Presumably
5
Introduction, the
C o h n , Einteilung
duction,
C o h n , Einteilung
und
( 1 8 9 9 ) , p p . 393-402 (reprint f r o m Philologus,
3
See
p. 45.
work und
was
Chronologie
der
Schriften
Supplementband
VII).
p p . 46-49. much
Chronologie,
longer than w h a t we p . 403.
possess
today.
See a l s o G o o d e n o u g h ,
Intro
p . 49.
Introduction,
metaphysics.
p . 92. See p p . 9 1 - 1 1 1 for G o o d e n o u g h ' s
s u m m a r y of P h i l o ' s
INTRODUCTION: PHILO'S METHOD AND BASIC CONCERNS
6
F o r Philo it is the m y s t i c in pursuit of G o d w h o is the true 1
p h i l o s o p h e r . G o d is the first a n d sole K i n g of the universe, a n d the r o y a l r o a d t h a t leads t o h i m is p h i l o s o p h y . T r u e p h i l o s o p h y is the passionate pursuit o f reality and ultimately o f G o d himself. I n d e e d , the royal r o a d of p h i l o s o p h y is in the e n d identical w i t h the L o g o s of G o d .
2
It is within this f r a m e w o r k of the underlying i d e n t i t y of p u r p o s e of Scriptural exegesis and p h i l o s o p h y that o n e is able t o understand P h i l o ' s frequent assertion that the great Greek philosophers were in reality d e p e n d e n t o n Moses for their deepest insights. This c l a i m is n o t s i m p l y an e x a m p l e of religious c h a u v i n i s m b u t rather an illustration of Philo's belief that the Scriptures are the fundamental source of m a n ' s k n o w l e d g e of G o d . 3. Philo
as an Exegete
of
Scripture
Philo's m e t h o d of exegesis is closely related to his understanding of
Scripture
as inspired
(including the
translation
of the
Old
T e s t a m e n t into Greek) and his c o n c e r n for m a n ' s present relation ship t o G o d . A i d e d b y the truths of p h i l o s o p h y , he tries t o s h o w in his exegesis of Scripture h o w m a n c a n escape from the
material
w o r l d and c o m e t o a p r o p e r understanding of the o n e true G o d .
3
T h u s , for the m o s t part, Philo is n o t greatly c o n c e r n e d w i t h speculation a b o u t the b e g i n n i n g of the w o r l d or with A d a m as a t y p e of primal m a n figure as such. E v e n in O p . Mund., where h e specifically deals w i t h the origin of the w o r l d a n d the creation of m a n , Philo's m a i n interest
is n o t in the question of origins in
itself b u t in showing h o w such a c o s m o g o n y as Moses presents in the early chapters of Genesis forms a fitting framework for the L a w w h i c h follows. His exordium, as I have said, is one that excites our admiration in the highest degree. It consists of an account of the creation of the 1
T h i s e s s e n t i a l l y religious g o a l of p h i l o s o p h y is n o t u n i q u e t o P h i l o b u t is c o m m o n a m o n g c o n t e m p o r a r y philosophers, especially the Neo-Pythagor e a n s a n d M i d d l e - P l a t o n i s t s . G o d is f r e q u e n t l y s p o k e n of as b o t h t h e s o u r c e a n d t h e o b j e c t of p h i l o s o p h i c a l c o n t e m p l a t i o n . See A b r a h a m J. M a l h e r b e , " T h e SuppHcatio pro Christianis of Athenagoras and Middle Platonism" ( u n p u b l i s h e d T h . D . d i s s e r t a t i o n , H a r v a r d D i v i n i t y S c h o o l , 1 9 6 3 ) , p p . 24,
118. 2
3
of
Post.
C. 1 0 1 - 1 0 2 .
S e e Jervell, Imago Dei, Scripture.
p. 52, n o t e 4 for references o n P h i l o as a n e x e g e t e
PHILO'S GOAL AND METHOD
7
world, implying that the world is in harmony with the Law, and the Law with the world, and that the man who observes the Law is constituted thereby a loyal citizen of the world, regulating his doings b y the purpose and will of nature, in accordance with which the entire world itself also is administered. 1
A t the v e r y e n d of O p . M u n d . , P h i l o states t h a t the o n e w h o learns the t r u t h a b o u t the origin of the w o r l d , a n d e v e n m o r e i m p o r t a n t l y a b o u t the G o d w h o c r e a t e d the w o r l d , " w i l l lead a life of bliss a n d blessedness, b e c a u s e h e has a character m o u l d e d b y the truths t h a t p i e t y a n d holiness e n f o r c e . "
2
N o t o n l y does P h i l o s h o w little interest in p r o t o l o g y , b u t h e is also relatively u n c o n c e r n e d a b o u t history. O n l y o c c a s i o n a l l y does h e focus o n such figures as A d a m , N o a h , the Patriarchs, or Moses, as actual historical persons. T h e literal facts r e p o r t e d b y
Scripture
a b o u t these individuals are for the m o s t p a r t a c c e p t e d as true, b u t it is in the deeper allegorical i n t e r p r e t a t i o n of these facts their real significance is t o b e f o u n d .
3
that
P h i l o ' s l a c k of interest in
h i s t o r y as the m e d i u m of G o d ' s self-revelation is further seen in his a l m o s t total disregard for the h i s t o r y of Israel after the t i m e of Moses, w h i c h , as H e i n e m a n n p o i n t s out, is all the m o r e striking in v i e w of the frequent allusions t o the h i s t o r y a n d literature of o t h e r p e o p l e s , especially the
Greeks, that are f o u n d in his
writings.
4
A s Grant writes of the allegorizers in general, b y his r e v e r e n c e for the timeless truths of P h i l o s o p h y , Philo " t e n d e d t o e m p t y h i s t o r y
1
O p . M u n d . 3. H e r e a n d t h r o u g h o u t this s t u d y E n g l i s h t r a n s l a t i o n s
P h i l o are e s s e n t i a l l y t h o s e of C o l s o n , W h i t a k e r , e t al., Philo
of
(L.C.L.), Vols.
I - I X plus S u p p . V o l s . I a n d I I (1929-62). H o w e v e r , changes h a v e been m a d e w h e r e v e r a m o r e e x a c t r e n d e r i n g of t h e G r e e k w a s felt n e c e s s a r y . 2
Op. Mund. 172.
3
P h i l o ' s u s e of a l l e g o r y for t h e i n t e r p r e t a t i o n of S c r i p t u r e h a s b e e n w i d e l y
d i s c u s s e d in t h e s e c o n d a r y l i t e r a t u r e . See, in p a r t i c u l a r , W o l f s o n , I , C h a p s . I and
I I ; R . M . G r a n t , The
Letter
and
the Spirit
(1957). G r a n t presents
d e t a i l e d a c c o u n t of t h e origin a n d s i g n i f i c a n c e of a l l e g o r i c a l
a
interpretation
in t h e H e l l e n i s t i c w o r l d , p a r t i c u l a r l y a s it w a s a p p l i e d t o H o m e r a n d H e s i o d . H e s h o w s h o w P h i l o ' s use of a l l e g o r y b o t h r e s e m b l e s a n d differs f r o m t h a t of
other Hellenistic
by
writers.
P a g a n w r i t e r s of t h e H e l l e n i s t i c
n o m e a n s in a g r e e m e n t o n t h e
p o i n t s o u t . I n O r i g e n ' s Contra both
Jews
and
Celsum
C h r i s t i a n s for t h e i r
( 3 . 1 9 , 6.22,
6.42), C e l s u s
(L.C.L.) 1
(Grant, I (igzg),
Bildung,
p.
28).
See discussion
by
of t h e
pp.
p p . 5 2 6 - 2 7 (referred t o b y G o o d e n o u g h in Light,
said,
Biblical
C o l s o n a n d W h i t a k e r in
p . xiii. S e e a l s o H e i n e m a n n , Bildung,
he
denounces
u s e of a l l e g o r y . T h e y w e r e , h e
s i m p l y t r y i n g t o c o v e r u p for t h e i g n o r a n c e a n d n a i v e t e writers
period were
v a l u e of a l l e g o r i c a l i n t e r p r e t a t i o n ,
526-27. p. 7 8 ) .
Philo
INTRODUCTION: PHILO'S METHOD AND BASIC CONCERNS
8
of meaning. H i s t o r y was at best an imperfect r e p r e s e n t a t i o n of eternal truth."
1
F o r P h i l o , it was s e l d o m a question of the literal v s . the spiritual interpretation of the L a w , b u t of the spiritual in a d d i t i o n t o
the
literal. A l t h o u g h his writings reflect relatively little interest in the literal interpretation of the Scriptures, h e n e v e r w a v e r e d in his l o y a l t y to the T o r a h a n d his o b e d i e n c e t o its literal c o m m a n d m e n t s . T o b e a J e w m e a n t for h i m first of all to o b e y the letter of the L a w . H e h a d little s y m p a t h y for the e x t r e m e allegorists w h o b e l i e v e d that the literal o b s e r v a n c e o f T o r a h w a s unnecessary, in spite o f the fact that h e fully agreed with t h e m that the real intention of 2
the L a w d i d not reside in its literal teachings a n d c o m m a n d m e n t s .
Y e t P h i l o u n d e r s t o o d the o b s e r v a n c e of the literal requirements of the L a w as o n l y a b e g i n n i n g in the life of eucrs(kia. In order t o a p p r e h e n d the deeper m e a n i n g of the L a w it was absolutely n e c e s sary for o n e t o resort t o allegorical interpretation, and o n l y those w h o were thus initiated i n t o the deeper " m y s t e r i e s " of the L a w w e r e able t o press o n to perfection a n d u l t i m a t e l y to the vision of G o d . 4. Philo's
Use of the Terms
3
Mu6o<; and Muo-ajpiov
B o t h of these terms o c c u r in Philo in c o n n e c t i o n w i t h the c a t e gories m a l e and female, a n d his use of t h e m is particularly structive
with
respect
1
Letter
2
For an extensive
and
Spirit,
to
his
relationship
to
paganism.
in
Philo
p . 107. discussion
of
Philo's
attitude
towards
the
extreme
allegorists, see W o l f s o n , I , 6 6 - 7 1 . P h i l o l i k e w i s e t o o k issue w i t h t h e literalists o r t r a d i t i o n a l i s t s , i.e. t h o s e w h o h e l d o n l y t o t h e literal i n t e r p r e t a t i o n of t h e S c r i p t u r e s . H e refers t o t h e m as (xixpo7roXi-rat in c o n t r a s t t o ol . . . [ZEI^OVI EYYpatpEvxe? mxxpiSi.,
TCOSE TCO
" w h o are n o t i n i t i a t e d
x6o|xtp ( S o m . 1 : 3 9 ) , a n d d e s c r i b e s t h e m as t h o s e
into allegory" a n d thus follow the "outward and
o b v i o u s " m e a n i n g of t h e t e x t . N o n e t h e l e s s , h e refrains f r o m c e n s u r i n g s u c h p e r s o n s , " f o r p e r h a p s t h e t r u t h is w i t h t h e m a l s o . " H e r a t h e r e n c o u r a g e s t h e m n o t t o s t o p w i t h t h e literal m e a n i n g of t h e t e x t , " b u t t o press o n t o a l l e g o r ical
interpretations
a n d t o r e c o g n i z e t h a t t h e l e t t e r is t o t h e o r a c l e b u t as
t h e s h a d o w to t h e s u b s t a n c e a n d t h a t t h e h i g h e r v a l u e s therein
revealed
are w h a t r e a l l y a n d t r u l y e x i s t " (Conf. L i n g . 1 9 0 ; cf. S o m . 1 : 1 0 2 , Conf. L i n g . 1 4 - 1 5 , F u g . 1 7 9 - 8 2 , D e u s I m m . 1 3 3 ) . See W o l f s o n , I , 5 7 - 6 6 for a d d i t i o n a l references a n d i n t e r p r e t a t i o n . 3
A s a l r e a d y n o t e d , t h e Allegory
of the Laws,
t h e f o r m of w h i c h is e x p o s i
t i o n of t h e L a w , is a d d r e s s e d t o s u c h a g r o u p as this. T h e r e f o r e , in s p i t e of t h e f a c t t h a t h e l i v e s a n d m o v e s in a w o r l d r a d i c a l l y different f r o m t h a t of the O l d T e s t a m e n t a n d Pharisaic Judaism, according to Philo's o w n under s t a n d i n g of his l i t e r a r y t a s k , t h e g r e a t b u l k of his w r i t i n g s a r e little m o r e t h a n a k i n d of M i d r a s h i c c o m m e n t a r y o n t h e T o r a h .
PHILO'S GOAL AND METHOD
9
frequently d e n o u n c e s m y t h o l o g y , in m o s t cases referring t o Greek mythology
1
b u t o c c a s i o n a l l y also E g y p t i a n .
3
4
2
T h e terms u.u0o7TXa-
5
CTTSIV, (j.u0oTcoua, a n d [i.u0oTtXaCTT<xi are used b y P h i l o in a d e r o g a t o r y sense in referring t o m y t h o l o g y a n d m y t h m a k e r s . M y t h s are false, man-made,
deceptive, and
fill
one with
false
opinions.
6
They
7
corrupt the m i n d s of the y o u n g , a n d are the i n v e n t i o n n o t of virtue b u t of pleasure.
8
Philo interprets the s e c o n d c o m m a n d m e n t
not
just as f o r b i d d i n g the actual m a k i n g of idols a n d i m a g e s b u t also "the
acceptance
(npoUaQcti) of m y t h i c a l
inventions
about
the
marriages a n d birth o f g o d s a n d the numberless and v e r y g r a v e 9
scandals associated with b o t h of t h e s e . "
B e c a u s e Scripture is the w o r k of G o d , " y o u will find [in it] n o m y t h i c a l i n v e n t i o n s b u t the firmly established c a n o n s of truth that protect from harm."
1 0
Moses neither i n v e n t e d m y t h s himself nor
a c q u i e s c e d in those c o m p o s e d b y o t h e r s . contrast
11
T h e w o r d s of Scripture, in
t o p a g a n m y t h s , a l w a y s c o n t a i n a deeper m e a n i n g that
"lies b e n e a t h the surface."
1 2
T h u s , e v e n t h o u g h s o m e passages in
Scripture resemble certain p a g a n m y t h s , the r e s e m b l a n c e is c o m pletely superficial, for these p a g a n m y t h s never c o n t a i n an under lying m e a n i n g .
13
In reference to the a c c o u n t of the 7tpcoTo<; avSpomcx;
a n d his t e m p t a t i o n
b y w o m a n , for e x a m p l e , Philo w r i t e s : "ECTTI
8s T<xuT<x ou fj.66ou TCAaafiaTa, olq TO •TCOITJTIXOV xai aofpicmxov yevoi;,
aXXi SeiyjAaTa TUTCWV in
yjxipsi
aXXrjyoptav TCapaxaXouvToc xa-ra T«<;
SI'LCTOVCHCOV IXTCOSOCTEM; ( O p . M u n d . 157). Philo is e v e n m o r e specific in A g r i c . 94-97, where h e refers to the a c c o u n t of the
serpent
beguiling E v e a n d that of the serpent of brass w h i c h Moses raised u p in the wilderness ( N u m . 2 1 : 8-9). T a k e n literally, " t h e s e things are like prodigies (cpatxfi.aT<x) a n d marvels ( T s p a x a ) . . . . B u t w h e n w e 1
V i t . C o n t . 63, A e t . M u n d . 55 ff., Spec. L e g . 1 1 1 : 4 3 - 4 5 , et al. D e c . 76, S p e c . L e g . L 7 9 , Migr. A b r . 76. P o s t . C . 5 2 , G i g . 58, Conf. L i n g . 6. L e g . A l l . 1 : 4 3 ; Sacr. A . C . 1 3 , 7 6 ; D e u s I m m . 5 9 ; F u g . 1 2 1 ; Spec. Leg. 1 : 7 9 . Conf. L i n g . 6; A e t . M u n d . , 56, 68. Sacr. A . C . 76. Post. C. 165. Sacr. A . C , 28. D e c . 156. D e t . P o t . I n s . 125. O p . M u n d . 2. O p . Mund. 157. See W o l f s o n , I , 3 5 . T h i s entire s e c t i o n is h e a v i l y d e p e n d e n t o n his concise s u m m a r y of t h e r e l e v a n t t e x t s (I, 1 4 , 32-36). 2
3
4
5
6
7
8
9
1 0
1 1
1 2
1 3
10
INTRODUCTION: PHILO'S METHOD AND BASIC CONCERNS
interpret w o r d s b y the m e a n i n g s that lie b e n e a t h the surface, all that Js m y t h i c a l (TO [Au0
W o l f s o n so clearly argues,
1
the p o i n t that P h i l o really is
m a k i n g is n o t that there are n o passages in Scripture t h a t resemble m y t h s , b u t rather t h a t e v e n those passages that d o resemble m y t h s are in a c t u a l i t y not m y t h s precisely b e c a u s e t h e y c o n t a i n an u n d e r lying meaning, a n d b y his o w n definition m y t h s d o n o t
contain
an underlying m e a n i n g . P h i l o starts with the premise that e v e r y thing in Scripture, w h e t h e r literally true or n o t , has an u n d e r l y i n g meaning. W o l f s o n is, of course, aware of the m a n y passages where P h i l o himself m a k e s allusions t o m y t h o l o g y for the p u r p o s e of illustration a n d rightly c o n c l u d e s t h a t this in n o w a y implies that P h i l o g i v e s c r e d e n c e t o a n y of these m y t h s . T h e s e references were s i m p l y part of the literary e q u i p a g e of an e d u c a t e d Hellenistic m a n of letters.
2
Nevertheless, W o l f s o n ' s c o n c l u s i o n that o n the level of ideas P h i l o was n o t at all influenced b y p a g a n m y t h o l o g y appears u n w a r r a n t e d . T h a t P h i l o e x p l i c i t l y denies such influence is clear. B u t whether or n o t he is entirely free from it is another m a t t e r . I n d e e d , there is considerable e v i d e n c e in his writings that h e was influenced b y p a g a n m y t h o l o g y o n a level deeper than that of simple literary allusion. The
3
question of P h i l o ' s a t t i t u d e t o w a r d s the m y s t e r y religions
of his d a y is closely related
to his v i e w of m y t h o l o g y , for
the
mysteries usually c e n t e r e d in the cultic r e - e n a c t m e n t of religious m y t h . O n the whole, P h i l o i s c o n s i d e r a b l y m o r e severe in his d e n u n c i ations of the m y s t e r y cults t h a n he is of m y t h o l o g y in a m o r e abstract literary sense. T h i s is u n d e r s t a n d a b l e , of course, insofar as the mysteries were n o t just a m a t t e r of religious belief b u t also of cultic
participation
in
rites,
many
of w h i c h
were
thoroughly
a b h o r r e n t t o Philo as a J e w . In
the
m o s t severe language
P h i l o d e n o u n c e s the
mysteries.
4
T h e y b r e e d licentiousness a n d e f f e m i n a c y , drunkenness, 1
1 ,
36.
2
Wolfson, I,
3
A s an examination
of
the
Rabbis,
38. who
of ( S t r . ) - B i l l . I V , 405-406, m a k e s clear, e v e n c e r t a i n
were
much
more
insulated from
Hellenistic-Oriental
i n f l u e n c e s t h a n P h i l o , m a k e u s e of s u c h a m y t h o l o g i c a l m o t i f as t h e of t h e 4
wanton-
androgynous
man.
Spec. Leg. 1 1 1 : 4 0 .
See
b'Erubin
18a,
GenR
8,
Megillah
doctrine 9a.
PHILO'S GOAL AND METHOD
II
ness, d e b a u c h e r y , n i g h t l o n g carousals, u n s e e m l y pleasures. p a r t i c i p a n t s in the p a g a n feasts
a n d m y s t i c rites,
1
The
according to
Philo, " c l e a n s e their b o d i e s w i t h lustrations b u t t h e y n e i t h e r wish n o r p r a c t i c e t o wash off from their souls the passions b y w h i c h life is defiled."
2
Moses b a n i s h e d f r o m the sacred c o d e of laws " t h e lore
of o c c u l t rites a n d mysteries (TSXETOCI xoct. |i.i>sr/jpia) and all such i m posture a n d b u f f o o n e r y . "
3
T h o s e w h o h a v e g r o w n u p in the c o m
m u n i t y of the L a w s h o u l d n o t t a k e part in the orgiastic rites a n d m y t h i c a l delusions of those w h o despise the truth a n d b e l o n g t o the p r o v i n c e of darkness rather t h a n light. N o n e of the followers of Moses s h o u l d "either c o n f e r or r e c e i v e initiation t o such rites," for b o t h of these activities are gross sacrilege (ou [iixpov <xvoa!,oopy7][i.a). B a s e d o n m y t h i c a l delusions, the g o a l of such rites is b u t
4
empty
v a n i t y ; " t h e w h o l e of h u m a n life w o u l d not suffice t o tell in detail of the follies inherent in t h e m . "
5
I n spite of the s e v e r i t y of his language in d e n o u n c i n g the sacred festivals a n d mysteries of the Greeks, h o w e v e r , as in the case of his literary allusions t o p a g a n m y t h o l o g y , P h i l o does n o t hesitate t o employ
the
t e r m i n o l o g y of the
mystery
religions for his
own
p u r p o s e s . T h u s , for e x a m p l e , he uses the t e r m ^uo-Taywyetv t o refer t o M o s e s ' leading of the r e p e n t a n t individual i n t o o b e d i e n c e t o the Law.
6
T h e technical m y s t e r y religion t e r m
Philo in reference to G o d , the High Priest,
10
7
Moses,
and Jeremiah.
11
8
the
cults.
12
kpo? ya(i.o<; m o t i f of p a g a n
1
C h e r . 92. Cher. 95.
3
5
8
(TCC [iixpa [AUG"t7]pi<x, (3p<xxuTepoa TeXeToa),
mysteries
2
4
soul in t e r m s t y p i c a l
m y t h o l o g y a n d the
(T<X (xeydcXa
[i-uo-ajpia),
14
or
Spec. Leg. 1 : 3 1 9 . Spec. Leg. 1 : 3 1 9 . Cher. 9 1 . Vert. 178.
7
Som. 1:164.
8
Spec. Leg. 1 : 4 1 , I I : 2 0 i , I V : 1 7 6 ; Vert. 75, 174.
9
Sobr. . Spec. L e g . 1 1 1 : 1 3 5 . C h e r . 49. See b e l o w , C h a p . I l l , E. S a c r . A . C . 62, A b r . 1 2 2 . L e g . A l l . I l l : 100, C h e r . 49, Sacr. A . C . 62. 5
1 0
1 1
1 2
1 3
1 4
mystery
A s in the Eleusinian mysteries, he distinguishes b e t w e e n the
lesser mysteries greater
9
In a n u m b e r of passages P h i l o
speaks of G o d ' s relationship t o the h u m a n of
iepocpavT7]<; is used b y
the s e v e n t y elders of M o s e s ,
5
perfect
13
a n d the
mysteries
12
INTRODUCTION: PHILO'S METHOD AND BASIC CONCERNS
(TSXSIOU xsXsxal).
1
Finally, just as in the
Greek mysteries,
Philo
enjoins silence u p o n the initiate. H e is n o t t o b l a b or b a b b l e the h o l y mysteries t o a n y of the profane b u t m u s t learn " t o store t h e m u p and g u a r d t h e m in s e c r e c y a n d silence."
2
G o o d e n o u g h finds in P h i l o ' s m y s t e r y religion t e r m i n o l o g y a clue to P h i l o ' s over-all u n d e r s t a n d i n g of J u d a i s m . In spite of the severity of P h i l o ' s d e n u n c i a t i o n of the p a g a n mysteries, it is, a c c o r d i n g t o Goodenough,
precisely in
terms of these mysteries
that
Philo
interprets his o w n religious tradition. In By Light, Light G o o d e n o u g h argues that it is " h i g h l y p r o b a b l e " that the J e w s a c t u a l l y h a d
"a
M y s t e r y of their o w n in contrast to the false mysteries of paganism, a M y s t e r y w i t h secret o b j e c t s 'manifest t o the sight' of the initiates, g o v e r n e d b y a b o d y of laws w i t h its o w n ispoc; Xoyoc;, a n d TCpay^axa tspa, 0£ia 6pyia."
3
T h i s interpretation of G o o d e n o u g h ' s has b e e n severely criticized by
Nock
4
and subsequently b y W o l f s o n .
6
N o c k points to Philo's
description of the Essenes and T h e r a p e u t a e , w h i c h P h i l o regards as ideal forms of Jewish existence. If such a cultus as G o o d e n o u g h posits existed a n y w h e r e , N o c k argues, it is likely that it w o u l d h a v e b e e n a m o n g such g r o u p s as these, y e t
Philo points
to
nothing
a m o n g t h e m that suggests a d e v e l o p e d m y s t e r y cult. " N o esoteric significance is a t t a c h e d to the meal [of the T h e r a p e u t a e ] a n d there is n o w o r d of a rite of a d m i s s i o n ; p e o p l e entered the g r o u p a n d t o o k r a n k b y s e n i o r i t y ; the spirit of the w h o l e , as of early monasticism,
is one of the
individualistic
quest
of
Egyptian
salvation."
6
N o c k also p o i n t s t o P h i l o ' s severe d e n u n c i a t i o n of the mysteries a n d t o the fact that Philo a p p e a r s t o h a v e o n l y a theoretical k n o w l e d g e of the general character of the mysteries and n o n e of the detailed facts w h i c h s o m e o n e such as Clement of A l e x a n d r i a
possessed.
7
P h i l o ' s use of m y s t e r y t e r m i n o l o g y N o c k prefers to explain o n the basis of a c c e p t e d usage a m o n g Greek philosophers, for e x a m p l e , Aristotle, Chrysippus, a n d Seneca. " T h e m e t a p h o r of
initiation,"
he writes, " w a s b y its p h i l o s o p h i c usage r e d e e m e d f r o m a n y u n d u e association w i t h i d o l a t r y ; it w a s particularly appropriate, 1
2
3
Sacr. A . C . 6 o ; see W o l f s o n , S a c r . A . C . 60, Cher. 48. P a g e 262.
4
Arthur
5
I . 44-55-
6
7
Darby
I , 43.
Nock,
r e v i e w of Light,
N o c k , Gnomon,
XIII,
162.
Gnomon,
165.
XIII,
inasmuch
Gnomon,
X I I I
(1937),
156-65.
PHILO'S GOAL AND METHOD
13
as it expressed the passive and receptive attitude of m i n d w h i c h P h i l o held to b e necessary."
1
T o d a y m o s t Philo scholars w o u l d agree w i t h N o c k o v e r against G o o d e n o u g h o n the q u e s t i o n of the existence of a Philonic M y s t e r y w i t h actual cultic rites and associations. I n d e e d , already in 1940, in his b o o k An Introduction
to Philo
Judaeus,
G o o d e n o u g h himself
modifies his earlier p o s i t i o n , stating that " i f m y s t i c J u d a i s m m a d e use of rites, it w o u l d h a v e used Jewish rites, suffused, indeed trans f o r m e d , w i t h p a g a n i d e o l o g y , b u t externally as u n c h a n g e d as P h i l o ' s Pentateuch."
2
T h a t m y s t i c J e w s h a d separate rites and
of their o w n t o w h i c h e v e n J e w s h a d t o b e specially
initiations admitted,
G o o d e n o u g h c o n c l u d e s , "there is n o evidence w h a t e v e r t o s u p p o r t . "
3
T h o u g h there almost certainly were n o separate cultic associations of m y s t i c J e w s w i t h rites and initiations of their o w n , h o w e v e r , does n o t m e a n that W o l f s o n is correct in h o l d i n g that the o n l y substantive influence of the mysteries o n Philo w a s in the area of religious t e r m i n o l o g y . A l l that can b e c o n c l u d e d here is that the question of Philo's relationship t o p a g a n religious rites a n d popular p i e t y is far less clear than is his a d o p t i o n of p a g a n p h i l o s o p h y . E a c h case of alleged influence must b e e x a m i n e d o n its o w n merits.
1
2
3
Gnomon,
XIII,
Introduction, Introduction,
165.
p . 206. p . 204.
CHAPTER TWO
THE
CATEGORIES
RELATIONSHIP
MALE A N DFEMALE
IN
TO PHILO'S UNDERSTANDING
THE
NATURE
OF
OFMAN
A . MAN's DUAL NATURE One of the fundamental emphases of P h i l o ' s a n t h r o p o l o g y is the distinction frequently m a d e b e t w e e n a higher a n d a l o w e r part of m a n ' s being. Different terms are used in different texts, a n d there are m a n y nuances of m e a n i n g , y e t the basic distinction constant
throughout
remains
his writings. T h u s in D e t . P o t . Ins. 82-84
•Philo states that " e a c h of us . . . has t u r n e d out t o b e t w o in n u m b e r , an animal a n d a m a n . " T o the animal part G o d has allotted
"the
vital p o w e r (TJ ^WTIXT)), o n the basis of w h i c h w e are a l i v e . " T o the m a n in us he has g i v e n " t h e rational p o w e r (TJ XoyixT)), o n the basis of w h i c h w e are rational b e i n g s . " B l o o d is the essence (ouaia) power
(8uvafxi<;) w h i c h m a n has in c o m m o n
with the
of the
irrational
animals, b u t spirit or b r e a t h (Trveufxa) is associated with the rational p o w e r . In R e r . D i v . Her. 232 TO aXoyov ^u/7J<; \xipoc, is c o n t r a s t e d w i t h TO XoyLxov [^i>x*K S^po?]. In L e g . All. I I : 6, where the s a m e distinction is m a d e , the irrational part of the soul is identified with sense a n d the passions w h i c h are the offspring of sense
(TO 8e
1
aXoyov al'o"67)o"L<; sera xocl Tot TOCUTTJ? exyova TOXOT)).
A l t h o u g h different terms are e m p l o y e d , Philo d r a w s the same c o n t r a s t in L e g . All. I l l : 161 w h e n he states that m a n consists of two
things, <\>vjfi a n d a&na.
T h e crw[xa was c r e a t e d out of earth,
7) Se <]>u-/y] eddipoe, SCTTLV, a7i6aTracr[xa OSLOV. I n this case ^uyi] refers t o the rational soul a n d o-£>[za rather loosely refers to the b o d y a n d the 1
T h e t e r m tyuxq b y itself is a m b i g u o u s . I n R e r . D i v . H e r . 5 5 , P h i l o e x p l a i n s
t h a t it c a n b e u s e d either t o refer t o t h e entire s o u l ( r a t i o n a l p l u s i r r a t i o n a l p a r t s ) or t o T O riYey.o\iiy.bv yepoc, Trj? i^ux*)?. T h i s l a t t e r is t h e
U
<J*X^
'Wi?-
O c c a s i o n a l l y P h i l o also u s e s tyuxh t o s t a n d for t h e i r r a t i o n a l s o u l (see S p e c . Leg. In
I V : 1 2 3 ) , b u t u s u a l l y h e s p e a k s of t h e i r r a t i o n a l part a n u m b e r of p a s s a g e s
Philo even
(fiepot;) of t h e soul.
uses voOs, in c o n j u n c t i o n w i t h
m o d i f i e r s as yewS?)? a n d avOpcoTUvoi;, t o refer t o t h e
such
created, mortal part
of m a n in c o n t r a s t t o t h a t in m a n w h i c h is a k i n t o t h e d i v i n e . Cf. L e g . A l l . 1:88,
90, 1 1 1 : 2 9 ; Q u a e s t . in G e n . 1 1 1 : 3 ; et al.
MAN'S DUAL NATURE
15
irrational soul, or, m o r e a c c u r a t e l y , to the b o d y w h i c h is a n i m a t e d 1
b y the irrational s o u l . W i t h equal ease P h i l o c a n s p e a k of m a n as mortal
2
or i m m o r t a l ,
3
or as b o t h m o r t a l a n d i m m o r t a l t o g e t h e r .
4
B u t in this he is s i m p l y using the t e r m " m a n " in different senses. It m a y refer to the rational soul, the irrational soul, or the c o m b i n a t i o n of the t w o .
5
Arranging the material in tabular form m a y help t o s u m m a r i z e the discussion. Man's
Higher
Nature
I
1
Cf. O p . M u n d . 1 3 5 .
2
O p . M u n d . 7 7 , V e r t . 205,
3
O m . P r o b . L i b . 46, S p e c . L e g . 1 : 8 1 .
4
O p . M u n d . 135, et
5
R e g a r d i n g the d i v i s i o n s of t h e s o u l r e l a t i v e
A p p e n d i x C, S e c t . 1.
Man's
Lower
Nature
Conf. L i n g . 1 7 6 .
al. t o its f u n c t i o n s , see
below,
i6
PHILO'S UNDERSTANDING OF THE NATURE OF MAN Man's
Higher
Nature
j
Man's
Lower
Nature
These t e x t s are n o t i n t e n d e d t o present a c o m p l e t e picture of Philo's understanding of the soul. Rather, t h e y reflect his constant emphasis o n the d u a l i t y of m a n ' s being and c o n v e y a clear i m p r e s sion of the fluidity of his t e r m i n o l o g y . Philo can express the same basic distinction b e t w e e n m a n as a creature of earth and m a n as related t o the divine in a great v a r i e t y of w a y s . B . MAN'S HIGHER NATURE: THE REALM OF THE ASEXUAL 1. The Oneness Female
and Indivisibility
of the Rational
Soul;
the
Male-
Polarity
Throughout
his writings Philo
emphasizes the
oneness and
indivisibility of G o d . G o d is b y nature simple, n o t c o m p o u n d .
1
He
2
is free from all m i x t u r e , a n d is himself the sole standard for the m o n a d , " f o r like time, all n u m b e r is subsequent t o the universe, and
G o d is prior t o the universe a n d is its m a k e r . "
1
L e g . A l l . I L 2 - 3 , M u t . N o r n . 183 ff., et al.
2
Rer. D i v . H e r . 183-85.
3
3
Likewise, the
L e g . A l l . 1 1 : 1 3 . I t is b e y o n d t h e s c o p e of t h i s s t u d y t o i n v e s t i g a t e in d e t a i l t h e e x t r e m e l y c o m p l e x issue of t h e p h i l o s o p h i c a l ( e s p e c i a l l y N e o P y t h a g o r e a n ) b a c k g r o u n d of P h i l o ' s use of n u m b e r t o d e s c r i b e r e a l i t y . P h i l o n e v e r e q u a t e s r e a l i t y a n d n u m b e r , v i e w i n g all t h a t is as t h e p r o g r e s s i v e e x t e n s i o n of t h e u n i t or p o i n t , b u t s i m p l y uses n u m b e r t o illustrate v a r i o u s a s p e c t s of r e a l i t y . A l t h o u g h c l o s e l y a s s o c i a t e d w i t h t h e m o n a d r a t h e r t h a n the d y a d , G o d h i m s e l f is b e y o n d all n u m b e r a n d d e s c r i p t i o n . H e is " m o r e v e n e r a b l e t h a n the m o n a d , p u r e r t h a n t h e u n i t " ( P r a e m . P o e n . 4 0 ; cf. V i t . C o n t . 2. O n t h e P y t h a g o r e a n d i s t i n c t i o n b e t w e e n o n e a n d t h e m o n a d , see E . Zeller, A History of Greek Philosophy, t r a n s . S. F . A l l e y n e [1881], I , 3 7 3 , 3 9 i f f ) . U l t i m a t e l y , o n l y G o d is a b l e f u l l y t o a p p r e h e n d G o d . M a n c a n o n l y k n o w that G o d is, n o t what h e is. H i s real n a t u r e is h i d d e n f r o m m a n ( P r a e m . P o e n . 40, 4 4 ; F u g . 1 6 5 ) .
MAN'S HIGHER NATURE d i v i n e w i s d o m is p u r e a n d u n m i x e d , forms The
of knowledge cannot
1
17
for " i n c o r p o r e a l a n d d i v i n e
be divided into
warring o p p o s i t e s . "
d i v i n e spirit is s u s c e p t i b l e o f neither s e v e r a n c e
2
nor division,
a n d t h u s , e v e n " t h o u g h it b e s h a r e d w i t h o t h e r s o r a d d e d t o o t h e r s suffers
no
diminution
in
understanding
and
knowledge
and
3
wisdom."
Philo frequently
calls a t t e n t i o n t o t h e similarity
between G o d
a n d t h e r a t i o n a l s o u l o f m a n . T h u s , for e x a m p l e , in O p . M u n d . 146 he s t a t e s t h a t " e v e r y m a n , in r e s p e c t divine
reason,
fragment
having
come
(aiTOo-irao-fxa)
into
o f his m i n d is allied t o t h e
being
o r effulgence
as a c o p y
(dbiauyao-FAA)
(exuayeiov) of that
or
blessed
n a t u r e . " I n M u t . N o m . 223 h e w r i t e s : Xoyio-fib? Se ppoc/u [xev o v o f i a , IU
TeXeiOTOCTuv 8E x a l GEIOTOCTOV e'pyov, TYJC; TOO TravTot; <| X']? but,
aTcooTrao-fza,
4
e v i d e n t l y realizing h o w f o r e i g n s u c h l a n g u a g e w a s t o t h a t o f
Scripture,
immediately
adds
the
qualification,
ELTCELV zoic, xocTa MMUO-YJV
r] orcep
oo-iwrepov
6EIA? ex[j.ayeiov
e[x
c o u l d m a n ' s m i n d , P h i l o asks in D e t . P o t . I n s . 89-90, b e i n g as
s m a l l as it is, e v e r h a v e h a d r o o m f o r all t h e v a s t n e s s o f s k y a n d universe
et [XYJ TYJ<; Geiat; xai, euSaifxovot; (J^X*)? exeivyjt; dcTcoo-TCAAPIA YJV
01!) SiaapeTov; z£y.vezai
y a p ouSev TOU Geiou XOCT' arcapTYjcytv, aXXa [xovov
5
EXTSLVETai..
1
Rer. D i v . Her. 183-85.
2
Rer. D i v . H e r . 132.
3 G
4
i
g
-
2
7
'
T h e p h r a s e rj TOU -KOMTOQ fyux'h is S t o i c . S e e Stoicorum
veterum
ed. J . v o n A r n i m , I I (1903), p . 7 7 4 . T h e e q u i v a l e n t p h r a s e r) is a t t r i b u t e d t o C l e a n t h e s (Stoic,
vet. frag.
ipuxrj
I [1905], p . 5 3 2 ) . S e e n o t e t o L e g .
A l l . L . 9 1 b y C o l s o n a n d W h i t a k e r in P h i l o 5
fragmenla,
TOU XOOJXOU
( L . C . L . ) I (1929), p . 478.
Cf. G i g . 2 5 - 2 7 , w h e r e P h i l o uses t h e a n a l o g y of fire t o e x p r e s s t h e s a m e
thought. Det.
P o t . I n s . 89-90, a s is t r u e o f a l m o s t all s i m i l a r p a s s a g e s in P h i l o ,
falls w i t h i n
a strongly soteriological
context.
E x a c t l y b e c a u s e t h e s o u l is
a f r a g m e n t o f t h e d i v i n e soul, m a n is a b l e t o k n o w n o t o n l y t h e u n i v e r s e but G o d Himself.
B u t s u c h k n o w l e d g e o f G o d is n e v e r a s t r i c t l y
human
possibility b u t can b e acquired only because G o d endowed t h e soul
with
7RVEU(ia 9etov, a n d b e c a u s e t h e s o u l is a7r6a7racrf/.a Getov, exjiayetov a n d a7rauYao"jj.a of t h e d i v i n e n a t u r e (cf. O p . M u n d . 1 4 5 , R e r . D i v . H e r . 2 3 1 , S p e c . L e g . I V : 1 2 3 , et a l . ) . P h i l o ' s p o s i t i o n c l e a r l y h a s affinities w i t h t h e G n o s t i c c o n c e p t of t h e k n o w l e d g e o f G o d . U l t i m a t e l y i t is G o d i n m a n t h a t k n o w s G o d , o r , t o u s e P h i l o ' s w o r d s : dXT)0etav Se jj.ETLaoiv ot TOV 0E6M 0ec5
I
_
p p . 146-47, 166-67, 7 4 7 5 .
2
I
2
pp. 11-79; Goodenough,
. 3 8 2 - 8 3 ; P a s c h e r , Konigsweg,
pp. 160-
260). Y e t P h i l o d r a w s b a c k f r o m t h e c o n c l u s i o n t h a t m a n c a n r e a l l y k n o w A L G H J , III
2
i8
PHILO'S UNDERSTANDING OF THE NATURE OF MAN B e c a u s e it is of the same substance as t h e divine nature, m a n ' s
rational soul is, like G o d , o n e a n d indivisible. A s such, it differs significantly from t h e irrational soul, w h i c h is subject t o division. Philo writes in R e r . D i v . Her. 232-33: Our
mind
But
is
indivisible
in
its
nature.
t h e i r r a t i o n a l p a r t of t h e s o u l u n d e r
went
a
sixfold
division,
and
thus
Creator f o r m e d seven p a r t s : sight, ing,
taste,
smell,
reproductive
touch,
faculty.
voice,
But
the
hear
and
the
the
rational
p a r t , w h i c h w a s n a m e d m i n d , he left u n divided,
after t h e
l i k e n e s s of t h e
entire
heaven.
F o r t h e r e , it is said, t h e
outer,
f i x e d s p h e r e is k e p t u n d i v i d e d , the
inner
sphere
division,
thus
underwent
completing
sixfold
the
seven
circles of w h a t a r e c a l l e d t h e stars
or p l a n e t s .
in
man
in
the
as
man
prove And
and and
to
is
what
the
rational
in
complete why
it
the
natures,
other
the
and
says
soul
heaven
Therefore,
the
be
that
wandering
For I regard the
being
universe.
thinking in
whereas
a
the
is two one
universe,
indivisible.
"He
did
not
divide the birds."
Philo concludes the discussion (236): And
thus
it
is
reasonable
that
the
t h i n g s w h i c h a r e like [ G o d ] , n a m e l y
the
mind
us,
in
us
and
the
mind
above
should subsist without parts and indivi sible, y e t n o n e t h e l e s s b e s t r o n g a n d c a p a ble
of
existing
dividing
and
distinguishing
all
things.
Philo draws a contrast in this passage b e t w e e n m a n ' s higher vou;, w h i c h is indivisible, a n d TO aXoyov tyuyyic, |xepo<;, w h i c h was d i v i d e d into seven parts. O n e of these parts is the r e p r o d u c t i v e 1
faculty (TO yoviu.ov) . T h e irrational part of the soul thus participates in the categories of male a n d female, the realm of the sexual. B u t n o w h e r e does Philo associate t h e rational soul of m a n w i t h the m a l e t h e n a t u r e of G o d . I n s p i t e of t h e f a c t t h a t m a n ' s r a t i o n a l s o u l is a d i v i n e f r a g m e n t , G o d ' s n a t u r e u l t i m a t e l y r e m a i n s a m y s t e r y t o m a n . Cf. D e t . P o t . Ins. 1
89, O p . M u n d .
69 ff.
S e e also O p . M u n d .
1 1 7 , Leg. All. 1 : 1 1 , Agric.
30.
MAN'S HIGHER NATURE female polarity. Neither G o d , n o r the L o g o s , nor the rational soul of m a n is i n v o l v e d in the sphere of male and female. T h e r e is n o t h i n g in P h i l o analogous t o t h e appsv66Y)Xu<; av6pw7to<; figure or t h e 1
appev667)Xu<; TOXTYJP of the P o i m a n d r e s . T h e male-female p o l a r i t y in P h i l o ' s writings is part o f the mortal sphere of the created w o r l d . I t d o e s n o t function o n a c o s m i c scale, particularly in the d r a m a of creation, as it does in m a n y of the G n o s t i c s y s t e m s .
2
T h a t the male-female p o l a r i t y is associated w i t h the irrational part of t h e soul, n o t w i t h the higher vou?, finds further c o n f i r m a t i o n in R e r . D i v . Her. 133 ff., a description of t h e division of all things i n t o equal parts a n d o p p o s i t e s t h r o u g h the a g e n c y of the
Xoyoc,
Tojxsut;. In R e r . D i v . Her. 138-39, a t e x t deserving close attention, P h i l o p o i n t s out t h a t just as G o d separated the living from
the
lifeless, so he further d i v i d e d the living i n t o rational and irrational
1
P o i m a n d r e s 1. 9. 1 5 .
2
O n e m u s t n o t f o r g e t , h o w e v e r , t h a t in m o s t , if n o t all, of t h e G n o s t i c
s y s t e m s t h e chief p u r p o s e of t h e m y t h of c r e a t i o n as w e l l as t h a t of t h e fall of
m a n is t o p o r t r a y m a n ' s p r e s e n t c o n d i t i o n . T h u s , insofar as this also is
o n e of P h i l o ' s m a i n c o n c e r n s , t h e d i s t i n c t i o n h e r e p o i n t e d t o b e t w e e n and
Philo
t h e G n o s t i c s m u s t n o t b e p u s h e d t o o far. F o r P h i l o , as well as t h e G n o s
tics, m a n ' s fall c a n b e p r e s e n t e d in t e r m s of s e x u a l desire (see b e l o w , C h a p . I I , C, 1 ) . P h i l o d o e s differ f r o m m a n y of t h e G n o s t i c s , h o w e v e r , p r e c i s e l y in his refusal t o p o r t r a y t h e c r e a t i o n of t h e c o s m o s itself in metaphors.
T h e w o r l d is n o t
the
result of
v a r i o u s d i v i n e a n d , in s o m e cases, G e r h a r d v o n R a d , Genesis. pp.
demonic,
A Commentary,
4 5 - 6 5 (cf. also B r e v a r d S. C h i l d s , Myth
mythological-sexual
a pre-cosmic struggle
among
powers. trans. John H . M a r k s ( 1 9 6 1 ) ,
and Reality
in the Old
Testament,
i 9 6 0 ) , h o l d s t h a t G e n . 1 a c t u a l l y reflects a k i n d of d e m y t h o l o g i z a t i o n of o l d e r N e a r E a s t e r n c r e a t i o n m y t h s . T h e p r i e s t l y e d i t o r , a l t h o u g h he e
s u c h t e r m s as t hdm,
uses
w h i c h is u n d o u b t e d l y c o n n e c t e d w i t h t h e B a b y l o n i a n
T i a m a t , a n d bohu, w h i c h is p r o b a b l y r e l a t e d t o B a a u , t h e P h o e n i c i a n n o c t u r nal m o t h e r g o d d e s s , r o b s t h e m of their m y t h o l o g i c a l m e a n i n g b y a t t r i b u t i n g t h e full r e s p o n s i b i l i t y for all of c r e a t i o n t o t h e free w i l l of o n e G o d . F o r e
e x a m p l e , t h e t e r m t hdm
in G e n . 1 refers n o t t o t h e p r i m e v a l sea m o n s t e r , e
t h e d r a g o n of c h a o s , b u t s i m p l y t o t h e p r i m e v a l sea. T h6m
is n o l o n g e r a
p e r s o n i f i e d c o s m i c p r i m o r d i a l p r i n c i p l e a n d h a s a b s o l u t e l y n o p o w e r of its own.
T h e p r i e s t l y e d i t o r uses t h e t e r m c o s m o l o g i c a l l y , w e m i g h t e v e n
"scientifically,"
not
mythologically.
As
von
Rad
points
out,
in
say
Gen.
1
"this c a r e f u l d i s t i l l a t i o n of e v e r y t h i n g m y t h o l o g i c a l ( b u t o n l y t h i s ) r e m i n d s o n e of t h e s o b e r reflections of t h e I o n i c n a t u r a l p h i l o s o p h e r s "
(p. 6 3 ) .
P h i l o w a s t h e heir of b o t h G e n . 1 a n d t h e w r i t i n g s of t h e G r e e k p h i l o s o p h e r s . L i k e t h e p r i e s t l y a u t h o r , h e also a t t r i b u t e s t h e c r e a t i o n of t h e w o r l d t o G o d a l o n e . G o d c r e a t e s t h r o u g h s u c h i n t e r m e d i a r i e s as t h e L o g o s a n d t h e P o w e r s , but
t h e s e a r e a l w a y s c o m p l e t e l y s u b s e r v i e n t t o his o w n a l l - p o w e r f u l
Furthermore,
as c a n b e seen t h r o u g h o u t O p . M u n d . ,
the j u d g m e n t
will. "and
b e h o l d , it w a s v e r y g o o d " of G e n . 1 1 3 1 w a s e v i d e n t l y of c r u c i a l s i g n i f i c a n c e for
Philo.
20
PHILO'S UNDERSTANDING OF THE NATURE OF MAN
species. T h e rational species he d i v i d e d into m o r t a l and i m m o r t a l , " a n d of the mortal he m a d e t w o portions, o n e of w h i c h he n a m e d m e n and
the
o t h e r w o m e n " (xal TOU OVYJTOU SUO [xoipa? sipya^ETO, d>v TTJV
fiiv avSpwv, TYJV 8k yuvaixwv zm(ff][iiGz).
H e r e it is clear t h a t the m a l e -
female polarity originated f r o m the sphere of the mortal, n o t from that part of m a n w h i c h was created after the i m a g e of G o d .
1
I n O p . M u n d . 1 2 Philo states that " e v e r y o b j e c t that is p e r c e p t i b l e by
the senses is in a state of b e c o m i n g a n d c h a n g e " (rcav yap TO
aio-OYjTov, ev yzviazi
xal [XETaPoXal?). M o s e s " a s c r i b e d
the
' b e c o m i n g ' (yeveeri<;) t o that w h i c h is p e r c e p t i b l e b y t h e
name
senses."
B u t b e c o m i n g and change, p h e n o m e n a w h i c h are closely associated w i t h the r e p r o d u c t i v e process, b e l o n g t o t h e w o r l d of sense-perc e p t i o n , n o t t o the w o r l d of ideas a n d the invisible m i n d . In Leg. All.
1 : 39 w e likewise find a sharp contrast b e t w e e n those parts of
m a n that h a v e t o d o w i t h sense-perception, s p e e c h , a n d r e p r o d u c tion, o n the one h a n d , and, o n the other h a n d , the m i n d , t h a t ruling part of the soul into w h i c h G o d breathed. I n O p . M u n d . 43, a n a c c o u n t of h o w the earth b r o u g h t forth shrubs and trees and countless kinds of fruits, Philo writes that these fruits served n o t o n l y for the nourishment of animals b u t were also " t h e means for the perpetual r e p r o d u c t i o n of their k i n d " (7tapacrxeual -Kpbc, TYJV TWV 6[i.olwv as I yevea-iv). This necessity for continuing the race is a characteristic of living things that b e l o n g t o the w o r l d of sensep e r c e p t i o n , including m a n . B u t m a n ' s rational soul, created after the i m a g e of G o d , has n o c o n n e c t i o n with t h e sphere of b e c o m i n g , change, and r e p r o d u c t i o n . T h e rational soul of each individual m a n is p a t t e r n e d after the eixwv TOU 6eou, i.e. the L o g o s ( O p . M u n d . 69). 2.
The Categories Male and Female after the Image
a. T h e Op.
of God Referred
in Reference
to the Man
to in De Opificio
2
Created
Mundi
134
Problem
M u n d . 134 is a t e x t frequently referred t o in c o n n e c t i o n w i t h
Philo's use of the categories male a n d female. 1
T h e s a m e p a t t e r n is a l s o f o u n d
in A g r i c .
139. O n the
q u e s t i o n of
b i s e x u a l i t y of t h e m a n c r e a t e d after t h e i m a g e of G o d in O p . M u n d . see b e l o w , Sect. 2, 2
1:1),
the 134,
d.
P h i l o a l s o s p e a k s of t h e i d e a of m i n d
(tSea TOU VOU; cf.,
e.g.,
Leg.
All.
b u t u s u a l l y h e refers t o t h e " m i n d in e a c h of u s " as c r e a t e d a c c o r d i n g
to the
etxtov T O U 8EOU. A c t u a l l y ,
whether the
individual mind
is p a t t e r n e d
a f t e r t h e L o g o s or t h e i d e a of m i n d m a k e s a b s o l u t e l y n o difference, for t h e L o g o s is e q u i v a l e n t t o t h e t o t a l i t y of ideas. See W o l f s o n , I , 2 3 1 - 3 6 , 245,
292.
MAN'S HIGHER NATURE
21
After this he says t h a t " G o d f o r m e d m a n by
taking
clay from the earth,
and
he
b r e a t h e d i n t o his f a c e t h e b r e a t h of l i f e . " By
t h i s also h e s h o w s v e r y c l e a r l y t h a t
there man
is
a vast
difference
between
the
now formed and the m a n that came
into existence God.
For
object ready
earlier after t h e i m a g e of
the
man
now
formed
of s e n s e - p e r c e p t i o n , of
quality,
consists
is
an
partakes
al
of b o d y
s o u l , is m a n or w o m a n , a n d b y mortal.
But
the
man
who
and
nature
came
into
e x i s t e n c e after t h e i m a g e of G o d is w h a t o n e m i g h t call a n idea, o r a g e n u s , or a seal,
a n o b j e c t of t h o u g h t ,
neither
male
nor
female,
incorporeal, by
nature
incorruptible.
A . F . Gfrorer, in c o m m e n t i n g o n this t e x t , m a i n t a i n s that the m a n c r e a t e d x a T a TYJV e i x o v a 6eou is asexual
(geschlechtlos). H e
bases
1
this j u d g m e n t o n the expression OUT' appev OUTS OYJAU. This w o u l d s e e m t o b e the m o s t natural interpretation of these w o r d s . N o n e t h e less, in recent times a n u m b e r
of exegetes, i n c l u d i n g J.
Jervell,
h a v e m a i n t a i n e d that here a n d in other related passages the m a n after the i m a g e of G o d is not asexual b u t bisexual or a n d r o g y n o u s . J e r v e l l p o i n t s t o the s a m e expression OUT' appev OUTS 6?jAu in s u p p o r t of this i n t e r p r e t a t i o n .
2
C. H . D o d d , in reference t o L e g . All. I I : 13,
c o m m e n t s : " T h u s it appears that P h i l o u n d e r s t o o d the L X X of Gen. i.e.
1: 27 . . . t o m e a n ' G o d created m a n , like Himself, bisexual,' bisexuality
(or a s e x u a l i t y )
is a part of the i m a g e of G o d . "
D o d d also refers t o the expression OUT' appev OUTC 6?jAu in O p . M u n d . 134 a n d states t h a t " a s e x u a l i t y is e q u i v a l e n t t o b i s e x u a l i t y in this case."
3
B u t this assertion is certainly less t h a n o b v i o u s , a n d n o
e v i d e n c e is offered in s u p p o r t of it. These different interpretations of the same d a t a p o i n t u p the p r o b l e m .
b.
Philo the One
Uses
Both
Genesis
God-like Nature
1:27
of M a n ' s
and
2:7
Higher
to
Establish
Nous
of the m o s t p e r p l e x i n g p r o b l e m s t o b e e n c o u n t e r e d in P h i l o ' s
writings is the identification o f the v a r i o u s " m e n " referred t o . T o
1
Philo und die jiidisch-alexandrinischeTheosophie
2
Imago Dei, p p . 64 ff. The Bible and the Greeks
3
( 1 9 3 5 ) , p. 1 5 1 .
( 2 e d . ; 1 8 3 5 ) , I, 2 6 7 - 6 8 , 4 0 7 .
PHILO'S UNDERSTANDING OF THE NATURE OF MAN
22
n a m e o n l y the m o r e w i d e l y used terms, o n e finds the m a n c r e a t e d after the i m a g e of G o d , the generic m a n , the first m a n , the h e a v e n l y man,
the
L o g o s , a n d the sense-perceptible a n d i n d i v i d u a l
man
(6 attrO/jToi; xal em jiipouc; avOpwrcoi;). T o a considerable e x t e n t
the
issue centers o n Philo's understanding of G e n . 1:27 and 2:7,
the
f o u n d a t i o n t e x t s of his a n t h r o p o l o g y . P r e v i o u s l y , in a n y analysis of P h i l o ' s use of these texts, interpreters h a v e f o c u s s e d o n O p . Mund.
134 a n d L e g . A l l . I : 3 1 f t . , w h e r e P h i l o rather
sharply
differentiates b e t w e e n the m a n c r e a t e d after the i m a g e of G o d in Gen.
1:27 a n d the earthly m a n in Gen. 2:7. T h e m a n of G e n . 1:27
is usually e q u a t e d w i t h the ideal m a n , i.e. the idea of m a n in the technical P l a t o n i c sense, and the m a n of G e n . 2:7 is held t o b e his earthly
counterpart.
1
One of the
difficulties w i t h this p o s i t i o n ,
h o w e v e r , is that it presupposes an interpretation
of G e n .
a n d 2:7 inconsistent w i t h P h i l o ' s interpretations elsewhere.
1:27
of these verses
2
In reality, P h i l o m o s t frequently uses Gen. 1:27 for the p u r p o s e of establishing the close likeness of empirical m a n ' s rational soul with the L o g o s and thus ultimately w i t h G o d , n o t in reference t o the idea of man, a c o n c e p t w h i c h as such does not a p p e a r in Philo's 3
writings at all. T h i s is the case, for e x a m p l e , in R e r . D i v . Her. 230-31, where Philo c o m m e n t s o n the phrase from G e n . 1 5 : 1 0 , " t h e birds he [ G o d ] d i d n o t d i v i d e " : Ei7rwvo5vTd7rp£7rovTa7replTouTcov imX&yei- "TCC Sk opvsa ou SIEIXEV," opvsa xaX
1
S e e , for e x a m p l e , J. J e r e m i a s ,
Oscar
Cullmann,
C. G u t h r i e a n d 2
H a v i n g said w h a t w a s fitting on these matters, M o s e s continues, "the birds he d i d n o t d i v i d e . " H e g i v e s t h e n a m e of
The
art. 'ASdu., T . W . N . T .
Christology
of
Charles A . M . H a l l
B a s i l A . S t e g m a n n , Christ,
The
the (2nd
"Man
New ed. from
I (1933), p.
Testament, rev.;
trans.
1963),
Heaven"
pp.
143;
Shirley 149-51.
(1927), pp. 19-49,
s e r i o u s l y d i s p u t e d t h e u s u a l i n t e r p r e t a t i o n of P h i l o ' s use of G e n . 1 : 2 7 a n d 2 :j. However,
his
book,
a published
doctoral
dissertation
from the
Catholic
U n i v e r s i t y of A m e r i c a , w a s a l m o s t e n t i r e l y i g n o r e d b y t h e s c h o l a r l y w o r l d . My
o w n a n a l y s i s of P h i l o ' s u s e of G e n . 1 : 2 7
and 2:7
is in m a n y
respects
s i m i l a r t o S t e g m a n n ' s . Cf. also J e r v e l l , p p . 5 2 - 5 3 . 3
R a t h e r t h a n referring t o t h e i d e a of m a n , P h i l o s p e a k s of t h e i d e a s of
t h e c o m p o n e n t p a r t s of m a n , i.e. t h e idea of t h e r a t i o n a l soul o r m i n d (ESsa TOU vou) a n d t h e i d e a of t h e i r r a t i o n a l s o u l , w h i c h a l s o i n c l u d e s t h e b o d y (ISIa TY)? ala0TjCTEco?). P h i l o d i v e r g e s f r o m P l a t o a t t h i s p o i n t , for " a c c o r d i n g t o P l a t o , t h e r e w a s n o i d e a of m i n d n o r a n y i d e a of s o u l ; b u t i n s t e a d t h e r e w a s a
universal
m i n d existing
probably from
eternity,
and
a universal
soul
w h i c h w a s c r e a t e d b y G o d p r i o r t o t h e c r e a t i o n of t h e w o r l d " ( W o l f s o n ,
389-90; cf. also 2 1 3 - 1 5 ;
cf. Timaeus
34Bff.).
I,
MAN'S HIGHER NATURE
23
birds t o the t w o winged a n d naturally s o a r i n g f o r m s of r e a s o n ( l o g o i ) , t h e o n e t h e a r c h e t y p e w h i c h is a b o v e us a n d t h e o t h e r t h e c o p y of it w h i c h w e possess. M o s e s calls t h e l o g o s w h i c h is a b o v e us t h e i m a g e of G o d , b u t t h e l o g o s w h i c h w e p o s s e s s t h e c a s t of t h a t i m a g e . F o r G o d , he s a y s , m a d e t h e m a n n o t " t h e i m a g e of G o d " b u t "after t h e i m a g e . " A n d t h u s t h e m i n d w h i c h e a c h of us possesses, w h i c h in t h e t r u e a n d full sense is t h e m a n , is a n i m p r e s s i o n a t t h i r d h a n d f r o m the Maker, while the middle m i n d serves as a m o d e l for o u r m i n d b u t is itself a r e p r e s e n t a t i o n of t h e Maker.
It is clear that Philo here e m p l o y s Gen. 1:27
n
° t t o refer t o the
idea of m a n , b u t to the higher n o u s in empirical m a n . T h a t
"the
n o u s in each of u s " w a s created "after the i m a g e o f G o d " m e a n s that man's
higher
nature is essentially
like the
d i v i n e nature.
Similarly, in O p . M u n d . 69, P h i l o interprets G e n . 1:27 t o refer to the higher n o u s in empirical m a n . But
1
after all t h e s e t h i n g s , as w a s said, h e
t e l l s u s t h a t m a n w a s c r e a t e d after
the
i m a g e of G o d a n d after his likeness. T h i s is
well
spoken,
for n o t h i n g
earth-born
r e s e m b l e s G o d m o r e t h a n m a n . B u t let n o
1
C o l s o n a n d W h i t a k e r in Philo
(L.C.L.)
I
(1929), p. 55, indicate
that
O p . M u n d . 69 is b a s e d o n G e n . 1 : 2 6 , b u t t h i s is m i s l e a d i n g . T h e t e r m 6U.OICOO-K; is a d m i t t e d l y
from Gen.
1:26,
but
the
substitution
of t h e
singular
xat
slx6va 0£ou ( G e n . 1 : 2 7 ) for t h e p l u r a l x a V slx6va T)u.£T£pav ( G e n . 1 1 2 6 ) p o i n t s t o P h i l o ' s m a i n use of t h e t e x t a t this p o i n t , n a m e l y as e v i d e n c e for t h e G o d like c h a r a c t e r of m a n ' s h i g h e r n o u s . G e n . 1 : 2 6 is n e v e r u s e d for t h i s p u r p o s e but
is seen as referring t o t h e c r e a t i o n of t h e entire c o m p o s i t e m a n .
Philo
m a k e s t h i s d i s t i n c t i o n m o s t c l e a r l y in F u g . 6 8 - 7 2 : G e n . 1 : 2 6 , h e p o i n t s o u t , s p e a k s of m a n w i t h o u t t h e article. B u t , he c o n t i n u e s , w h e n M o s e s w a n t s t o refer, n o t t o " t h e m a n s o - c a l l e d " man"
(6 XEYOU-EVO? a\i0pco7ras) b u t t o " t h e
true
(6 Trpo? dXr)0£iav &\>Qp<xmoq) h e uses t h e a r t i c l e : ETTOUIO-EV 6 0so<; T O V
a\i0pco7rov. See S t e g m a n n , Christ,
The "Man
from
Heaven,"
p . 25.
A c t u a l l y , P h i l o ' s m a i n interest in G e n . 1 : 2 6 is in reference t o t h e p l u r a l f o r m 7roiT)o-tou.£v, for e a c h t i m e h e refers t o G e n . 1 : 2 6 it is p r i m a r i l y in o r d e r t o clarify t h e m e a n i n g of t h i s t e r m . B e c a u s e m a n is a m i x e d c r e a t u r e , P h i l o e x p l a i n s , c o n t a i n i n g w i t h i n h i m b o t h g o o d a n d b a d , it w a s fitting t h a t G o d s h o u l d c r e a t e o n l y t h e g o o d p a r t of m a n , l e a v i n g t o his P o w e r s t h e c r e a t i o n
of t h e b a d (Fug. 68-70, M u t . N o m . 30-31, Conf. L i n g . 169-80, O p . M u n d . 7 2 - 7 5 ) . I n n o p l a c e in his w r i t i n g s d o e s P h i l o d r a w a d i s t i n c t i o n EEXCOV a n d 6u.oitoo-i? in G e n . 1 : 2 6 Magus
( H i p p o l y t u s , Ref.
between
s u c h as w e f i n d in t h e s y s t e m of
V I , 1 4 , 5 ) . See d i s c u s s i o n in Jervell, p p .
Simon 143-44.
PHILO'S UNDERSTANDING OF THE NATURE OF MAN
24
o n e r e p r e s e n t t h e r e s e m b l a n c e as o n e of b o d i l y f o r m . F o r n e i t h e r is G o d in h u m a n f o r m , n o r is t h e h u m a n b o d y G o d - l i k e . I t is r a t h e r t o t h e m i n d , t h e ruling e l e m e n t of t h e soul, t h a t " i m a g e " refers. F o r a c c o r d i n g t o o n e m i n d as a n a r c h e t y p e , e v e n t h e m i n d of t h e u n i v e r s e , t h e m i n d in e a c h of t h o s e w h o s u c c e s s i v e l y c a m e i n t o being was copied.
T h e association of the creation of m a n after the i m a g e of G o d w i t h the fact that m a n is the bearer of the higher rational soul is u n mistakable.
1
B u t it is n o t Gen. i : 27 alone that P h i l o p o i n t s t o as establishing the essential likeness b e t w e e n m a n ' s rational soul a n d G o d . Gen. 2:7 serves e x a c t l y the s a m e p u r p o s e . In Spec. L e g . I V : 123, for e x a m p l e , he writes that the ouuia of the intelligent and
reasonable
soul is 7ivsG[i.a Oeiov. Moses affirmed this truth, Philo maintains, w h e n in his a c c o u n t of creation he says t h a t G o d b r e a t h e d TCVOYJV Z,u>r]c, u p o n the first m a n , the founder of the race. In Quaest. Gen.
I : 50 Philo refers t o the m i n d as a " d i v i n e i n b r e a t h i n g , "
in 2
a n d in R e r . D i v . Her. 56-57 he writes that G o d " d i d n o t m a k e the s u b s t a n c e of the m i n d d e p e n d o n a n y t h i n g created, b u t it as b r e a t h e d
represented
u p o n b y G o d . " A g a i n , he cites G e n . 2:7
as
his
authority. In D e t . P o t . Ins. 80 Philo q u o t e s G e n . 2:7 with 7iveu(jwt t h a n 7ivorjv
rather
the w o r d i n g of the L X X , a n d t h e n p r o c e e d s t o argue 3
that the passage is clear e v i d e n c e that the essence of life is 1
IU
:
See a l s o S p e c . L e g . I ; 8 1 , w h e r e P h i l o refers t o [TTJV] 4 X ')
v
r
mzu\nx. v
' ) dSdvaTov,
(focui TU7ico87Jvai X A T A TTJV eixova TOU OVTOI;. H e e x p l i c i t l y identifies t h e eixcov 8eou in t h i s p a s s a g e : "koyoq 8 ' E A T I V sixcov 0eou, 81' ou auu-XAI; 6 xoafioi; £8r)u.ioupYELTO. r)V
T h u s a g a i n it is clear t h a t P h i l o is u s i n g G e n . 1 :2j
to establish the
kinship
b e t w e e n m a n ' s r a t i o n a l soul a n d t h e L o g o s . Cf. a l s o S p e c . L e g . 1 1 1 : 2 0 7 , D e c .
134, R e r . D i v . H e r . 56-57, D e t . P o t . I n s . 83, V e r t . 203-205, V i t . M o s . 1 1 : 6 5 . P h i l o a l s o i n t e r p r e t s t h e sv sixovt 8sou of G e n . 9 : 6 in r e l a t i o n s h i p t o t h e r a t i o n a l soul of m a n , a n d in S o m . 1 : 7 3 - 7 4 h e and
refers b o t h t o G e n .
1:27
9 : 6 as s u p p o r t for m a n ' s likeness t o G o d . See also S p e c . L e g . 1 1 1 : 8 3 - 8 4 .
2
I n G r e e k f r a g m e n t , SLtcpuaTiau;.
3
I n L e g . A l l . I l l : 1 6 1 P h i l o a l s o q u o t e s G e n . 2 : 7 w i t h 7rvsu[i.a £(07)5 r a t h e r
than
7TVOT]V
Ciorji;, a n d in O p . M u n d .
134-35, a l t h o u g h h e u s e s
TCVOTIV
^corji;, in
t h e f o l l o w i n g d i s c u s s i o n h e s p e a k s c o n s i s t e n t l y of t h e i n b r e a t h i n g of 7rvsuu.a 8siov. I n v i e w of t h i s r a t h e r free a l t e r n a t i o n b e t w e e n TCVO-J] i^co/j? a n d rcveuu.a i^corji;, it is s o m e w h a t s u r p r i s i n g t o f i n d P h i l o a r g u i n g in L e g . A l l . 1 : 3 3 ,
42
t h a t M o s e s p u r p o s e l y u s e d t h e e x p r e s s i o n 7TVOTJ Ccorji; r a t h e r t h a n 7iv£uu.a A t h e n a g o r a s in t h e Sitpplicatio
pro Chrislianis
( C h a p . 7) s i m i l a r l y c o n t r a s t s
MAN'S HIGHER NATURE
25 1
B u t 7TV£ij(i.a, he maintains, is n o t aspa xivoiifAsvov, aXXa TUTOV TLVOO xal
}(apaxTY]pa Osta? Suvajxeco?, YJV ovofxaTi
xaXel, (xa
SyjXwv
xuplw
Mcoua-%
Eixova
OTI <xp/;sTU7iov (xsv tpucTscoq; Xoytxyj? 6 0E6? SCTTL, fiifi-Y]-
§s x a l a7is(.x6v(.o-fi,a av0pco7io?, ou TO Sitpusq; ^ w o v , aXXa TO TYJ?
83).
T h e presence of the t e r m aTCixovio-fxa s t r o n g l y suggests that Philo h a d G e n . 1:27 in m i n d as well as Gen. 2:7. This is c o n f i r m e d b y a n u m b e r of o t h e r passages w h e r e he specifically refers to the t w o Genesis t e x t s together, using b o t h of t h e m t o s u p p o r t
the
same
thesis. A n e x a m p l e of this is O p . M u n d . 139, where Philo writes in reference t o the soul of the 7ipa>To<; av0pw7io<;: For he [God] employed for its making no pattern taken from among created things, but solely, as I have said, his own Logos. It is on this account that he says that man was made a likeness (aTCLxovLcrfxa) and imitation (fiifi,Y]fi.a) of the Logos, when the breathing into his face took place (efi.7iveuo-0svTa EL? TO 7ip6cTC07iov). Likewise, in R e r . D i v . Her. 56-57 Philo w r i t e s : But he [the lawgiver, i.e. Moses] did not make the substance of the mind depend on anything created, but represented it as breathed upon b y God. For the Maker of all, he says, blew into his face the breath of life (TCVO/JV ^(0%), and man became a living soul; just as we are also told that he was fashioned after the image ( x a T a TYJV s l x o v a ) of his Maker. 2
In s u m m a r y , then, it m a y b e said that Philo generally uses b o t h Gen.
1:27 a n d 2:7 to establish the essential kinship b e t w e e n
the
rational soul of m a n a n d G o d . W i t h respect t o Gen. 1:27 he argues o n the basis of the assertion that m a n was c r e a t e d n a i
eixova TOU
©sou. In G e n . 2:7 he refers to the divine inbreathing of 7IVEU(i.a (or rcvor) a n d
7WEUU.a a n d m a y p o s s i b l y b e d e p e n d e n t o n P h i l o . See M a l h e r b e ,
Supplicatio, ophers,
p p . 7 6 - 7 7 : " A t h e n a g o r a s c o n t r a s t s t h e k n o w l e d g e of t h e p h i l o s
which
t h e y a t t a i n w h e n m o v e d a c c o r d i n g t o their s y m p a t h y w i t h
the divine breath
(RCOIRJTAI u.ev ya.p . . . 91X60091x1, . . . x a x a au(X7id0siav
TOU 6EOU 7tvoYJ?) w i t h t h e k n o w l e d g e of C h r i s t i a n s , w h o h a v e t h e as witnesses,
TTJ?
rcapa
prophets
w h o are m o v e d t o s p e a k b y t h e d i v i n e S p i r i t " (rju.eT<; Sk . . .
7TV£uu.aTi £v0lco). I t is clear t h a t 7RVEUU.a h e r e r e p r e s e n t s a closer
relationship
t o G o d t h a n 7TVOYJ, a n d t h i s is a p p a r e n t l y t h e p o i n t t h a t P h i l o is t r y i n g t o m a k e in L e g . A l l . 1 : 3 1 ff. Cf. W o l f s o n , I , 394, n o t e 46. 1
W i t h ref. t o P h i l o ' s u n d e r s t a n d i n g of t h e soul as m a t e r i a l or i m m a t e r i a l ,
see b e l o w , A p p e n d i x C , S e c t . 2. 2
R e g a r d i n g P h i l o ' s t e a c h i n g o n t h e p r e - e x i s t e n c e of t h e s o u l , see b e l o w ,
A p p e n d i x C, Sect.
3.
PHILO'S UNDERSTANDING OF THE NATURE OF MAN
26 TCVOYJ)
In a n u m b e r of passages he quotes b o t h t e x t s together
as his a u t h o r i t y .
1
O n e question remains to b e answered. Is the m a n c r e a t e d
after
the i m a g e of G o d referred t o in O p . M u n d . 134 and L e g . A l l . 1:31 ff., in line with Philo's general usage, t o b e identified w i t h the rational soul in actual m a n ? If this is so, h o w is the earthly m a n
referred
to in these passages t o b e u n d e r s t o o d ? c. T h e
Sequence
of
Creation
in
De
Opificio
Mundi
T h r o u g h o u t O p . M u n d . P h i l o a c c e p t s the P l a t o n i c principle that the creation of the ideal m u s t p r e c e d e that of the sense-perceptible. G o d realized, writes P h i l o , that n o o b j e c t of sense-perception w o u l d be faultless
(dvuTOxta-iot;) unless m a d e a c c o r d i n g to an
archetypal
a n d intelligible idea. T h u s " w h e n he willed to create this visible w o r l d , he first fully f o r m e d the intelligible w o r l d , in order that he m i g h t h a v e the use of a p a t t e r n w h o l l y G o d - l i k e a n d i n c o r p o r e a l in p r o d u c i n g the material w o r l d , as a later creation, the v e r y image of
an earlier."
2
Philo understands Gen. 1 : 1 - 5 , w h i c h describes
D a y O n e of creation, as referring t o the c r e a t i o n of the w o r l d of ideas. T h a t this ideal creation was c a t e g o r i c a l l y different from that of the sense-perceptible w o r l d , w h i c h t o o k place o n the s e c o n d through
the sixth d a y s , is clearly attested to b y the w o r d s of
Scripture, a c c o r d i n g to Philo, for the first d a y is n o t called "first" (np&zoc,),
lest it be r e c k o n e d w i t h the o t h e r d a y s , but rather " o n e "
(jxta; O p . M u n d . 15), " a n expression due to the oneness (LIOVMCTI?) of the intelligible w o r l d a n d t o its h a v i n g the nature of the m o n a d " (LiovaStxYjv I^OVTO? cpuo-tv; O p . M u n d . 35). Philo clearly states ( O p . M u n d . 36) that the creation of the in c o r p o r e a l w o r l d was c o m p l e t e d o n
D a y O n e of c r e a t i o n .
3
The
genera, therefore, w h i c h he refers t o in O p . M u n d . 36-128, are n o t t o b e e q u a t e d with the ideas of the D a y O n e creation but are t o be seen as part of the visible creation of d a y s t w o t h r o u g h six,
1
T h i s a n a l y s i s is n o t m e a n t t o d e n y t h a t in s u c h t e x t s as O p . M u n d . 134
a n d L e g . A l l . 1 : 3 1 ff. P h i l o c o n t r a s t s t h e e a r t h l y m a n of G e n . 2 : 7a w i t h t h e man
c r e a t e d after t h e i m a g e of G o d of G e n . 1 : 2 7 .
R a t h e r it s i m p l y u n d e r
scores t h e f a c t t h a t P h i l o uses G e n . 2 : 7 b as w e l l as 1 : 2 7 t o affirm t h e G o d like n a t u r e of m a n ' s r a t i o n a l soul. 2
O p . M u n d . 16.
3
I n Q u a e s t . in G e n . 1 : 1 9 P h i l o s u g g e s t s t h a t t h e i n c o r p o r e a l c r e a t i o n m a y
h a v e e x t e n d e d t h r o u g h t h e s i x t h d a y . T h e c o n j e c t u r a l t o n e of t h e p a s s a g e , h o w e v e r , d o e s n o t f a v o r b a s i n g a n y f i r m c o n c l u s i o n s o n it.
MAN'S HIGHER NATURE
27
w h i c h was generic in relation t o the subsequent creation of species (cf.
O p . M u n d . 36, 37, 5 5 ) . i
After explaining w h y the ideal creation takes p r e c e d e n c e o v e r the
sense-perceptible
creation,
P h i l o v e r y briefly refers
to
the
2
particular ideas created o n D a y O n e . H e interprets rcveuLta 6eou of Gen.
1:2 as referring to the i n c o r p o r e a l essence of spirit (ao-w(ia-ro<;
oucrta TuveuLiaTo?), w h i c h is p r o b a b l y equivalent t o w h a t he elsewhere refers t o as the idea of m i n d .
3
A s e c o n d significant factor in the interpretation of O p . M u n d . is the i m p o r t a n t distinction b e t w e e n genera a n d species. G o d does not
create the
particular plants a n d
animals directly after
the
p a t t e r n of the incorporeal ideas, a c c o r d i n g t o Philo, b u t rather first creates the genera, a n d o n l y s u b s e q u e n t l y the species. T h u s o n d a y s two
t h r o u g h six G o d c r e a t e d
^wcmAao-TEtv evexetpet)
the
m o r t a l genera
before—referring
to
(T<X 0VY]T<X yevyj
order,
not
time—he
c r e a t e d the species (cf. O p . M u n d . 62, 76).* 1
See O p . M u n d .
13-14,
where
Philo
argues that
the
n u m b e r six
itself
s h o w s t h e a p p r o p r i a t e n e s s of t h e G e n e s i s s c h e m e of c r e a t i o n . A s t h e p r o d u c t of
b o t h o d d (male) and even
( f e m a l e ) n u m b e r s , i.e. t w o t i m e s t h r e e , six is
b o t h m a l e and female. I t w a s therefore appropriate that beings t h a t were t o o r i g i n a t e f r o m a c o u p l i n g t o g e t h e r (xa? ex auvSuaafiou yeveaet?) s h o u l d b e c r e a t e d d u r i n g t h i s t i m e . See also L e g . A l l . 1 : 2 - 4 . 2
O p . M u n d . 29-35.
It i
s
b e y o n d t h e s c o p e of t h i s s t u d y t o a n a l y s e t h i s
p a s s a g e in d e t a i l . S e e t h e e x t e n s i v e d i s c u s s i o n in W o l f s o n , 3
I, 3 0 0 - 3 1 6 .
I n L e g . A l l . 1 : 1 ff. P h i l o refers t o YJ iSea xou vou a n d YJ ISEOC XYJ? ataOYjaeco;,
w h i c h , h e s a y s , are s y m b o l i c a l l y referred t o b y t h e t e r m s " h e a v e n " " e a r t h " in G e n . 2 : 4
and
(cf. L e g . A l l . 1 : 2 1 - 2 2 ) . O n t h e w h o l e , h o w e v e r ,
these
c o n c e p t s o c c u r v e r y r a r e l y in his w r i t i n g s , w h i c h is p r o b a b l y t o b e a c c o u n t e d for
b y t h e p a r t i c u l a r w o r d i n g of his G r e e k O l d T e s t a m e n t a n d his u n d e r
s t a n d i n g of t h e L o g o s . G e n . 1 : 2 7 s a y s t h a t m a n w a s c r e a t e d x a x ' elx6va Oeou. But p.
Philo
u s u a l l y i n t e r p r e t s t h e EIXCOV 8eou t o b e t h e L o g o s
(see
Jervell,
5 5 ) . T h u s m a n w a s c r e a t e d a c c o r d i n g t o t h e p a t t e r n of t h e L o g o s , w h o in
t u r n is a p a t t e r n of G o d . I t is p r e c i s e l y b e c a u s e P h i l o u n d e r s t a n d s t h e L o g o s to be the location
(y_&pa) or p l a c e
(xorro?) of t h e i d e a s t h a t h e c a n
omit
m e n t i o n of t h e p a r t i c u l a r i d e a a n d refer o n l y t o t h e L o g o s p r o p e r ( O p . M u n d . i g - 2 0 ) . If o n e w a n t s t o p u t t h e m a t t e r as s i m p l y as p o s s i b l e , he w r i t e s , ouSev 5v
SxEpov EITTOI xov voYjxov x6au.ov elvai r] 8eou Xoyov YJSYJ xoa(XO7toto0vxog ( O p .
Mund. refer t o 4
24). T h u s it is o n l y o c c a s i o n a l l y t h a t P h i l o finds it a p p r o p r i a t e t o YJ
t 8 e a xou vou or
See S t e g m a n n , Christ,
YJ
tSea
"The
XYJ?
Man
ala8Y)o-ECog as s u c h . from
Heaven,"
pp. 19-32.
P h i l o u n d e r s t a n d s t h e d a y s of c r e a t i o n n o t as referring t o c h r o n o l o g i c a l t i m e b u t r a t h e r as p o i n t i n g t o t h e p r i n c i p l e of o r d e r (xd£i?) in t h e c r e a t e d w o r l d . A c t u a l l y , all t h i n g s t o o k s h a p e s i m u l t a n e o u s l y (ajxa -reavxa o-uvtaxaxo), but
" t h o u g h all t h i n g s t o o k s h a p e t o g e t h e r , t h e f a c t t h a t l i v i n g o r g a n i s m s
w e r e a f t e r w a r d s t o c o m e i n t o e x i s t e n c e o u t of o n e a n o t h e r r e n d e r e d n e c e s s a r y a n a d u m b r a t i o n of t h e p r i n c i p l e of o r d e r in t h e n a r r a t i v e " ( O p . M u n d . cf. a l s o O p . M u n d . 1 3 , 2 6 ; L e g . A l l . 1 1 2 - 4 .
Cf. P l a t o ,
Timaeus
34C,
67;
37D;
28
PHILO'S UNDERSTANDING OF THE NATURE OF MAN Recalling then w h a t was said a b o v e a b o u t Philo's interpretation
of Gen. 1:27 and 2:7, w e arrive at the following analysis of O p . M u n d . as a w h o l e . (1) In
Op. Mund.
1-35,
after
briefly introducing
the
entire
treatise, Philo i m m e d i a t e l y explains the p r e c e d e n c e of the Day
One creation
ceptible creation
(Gen. 1:1-5)
o v e
r
the subsequent
(Gen. 1 : 6 - 2 : 3 ) . T h e
6.G
OUGIOL
ideal
sense-per WEOU-OCTO;;
(Op. M u n d . 29) is p r o b a b l y t o b e u n d e r s t o o d as equivalent t o what Philo elsewhere refers t o as the idea of m i n d . T h e creation of the incorporeal w o r l d of ideas was c o m p l e t e d with the end of D a y O n e . (2) O p . M u n d . 36-128 refers t o the creation of the generic senseperceptible world, beginning with h e a v e n and ending with
man.
In the case of plants a n d animals G o d first forms the genera and o n l y afterwards the species ( O p . M u n d . 62, 64, 76). B e c a u s e m a n is 1
a c o m p o s i t e (o-uvGerov, 0-uyxpiiu.a), h o w e v e r , consisting of b o t h a h e a v e n l y a n d an earthly part, in the case of m a n G o d first forms the genus of each part of m a n , which o n l y " a f t e r w a r d s " t o g e t h e r f o r m the first empirical m a n , the species A d a m . Neither of these " m e n , " the earthly or the h e a v e n l y (i.e. the m a n created after the i m a g e of G o d ) , is t o b e t h o u g h t of as an actually existing m a n b u t o n l y as a generic c o m p o n e n t part of the first empirical m a n . Since in t h e process of creation, o n e thing was n o t created after another c h r o n ologically, the generic earthly m a n and the generic h e a v e n l y m a n c o u l d b e said t o h a v e real existence o n l y in their u n i o n in the first empirical man, w h o is c o m p o s i t e . In themselves, t h e y are p h i l o sophical-exegetical constructs t h a t enable Philo t o deal with
the
given before h i m , i.e. the creation a c c o u n t s of Gen. 1 a n d 2. T h r o u g h o u t O p . M u n d . it is the actual t e x t of Gen. 1 and 2 that determines the d e v e l o p m e n t a n d arrangement of P h i l o ' s exegesis. T h u s , although in terms of the logical order of creation the creation of the rational element in m a n precedes that of the
irrational,
nonetheless Philo m o v e s b a c k a n d forth from o n e t o the other as the text d e m a n d s . F o r e x a m p l e , Gen. 1:26 is taken b y Philo t o refer t o the creation of the entire c o m p o s i t e m a n ( O p . M u n d . 72-75), whereas Gen. 1:27a constitutes an e m p h a t i c reminder that o n l y in reference t o the rational m i n d is m a n really G o d - l i k e ( O p . M u n d . 69-71). Gen. 1:27b, h o w e v e r , refers again t o the entire c o m p o s i t e A r i s t o t l e , Physica
V I I I , 1, 2 5 1 b , 1 0 - 1 2 ; Categoriae
See W o l f s o n , I , 2 1 4 - 1 6 ) . 1
O p . M u n d . 1 3 5 , M u t . N o m . 183 ff.,
et
al.
12, 14b, 4-5;
12, 14a,
27.
MAN'S HIGHER NATURE
29
m a n , w h o s e generic earthly c o m p o n e n t part is p o t e n t i a l l y both m a l e a n d female, b u t w h o in the historical species is either male or female (Op.
M u n d . 76; cf. R e r . D i v . Her. 164, L e g . A l l . I I : 13). It is t o b e
k e p t in m i n d that Philo uses the t e r m av6pco7ro<; t o refer either to the h e a v e n l y part of m a n , the earthly part, o r the entire c o m p o s i t e man.
1
n
(3) P h i l o interprets G e n . 2:4-7
°t
a
s
r e c o r d i n g a n e w creation
b u t rather as a s u m m a r y r e c a p i t u l a t i o n of w h a t has already b e e n d e s c r i b e d in Gen. 1 : 1 - 2:3. T h i s is clearly seen, not o n l y f r o m the actual s u b s t a n c e of his interpretation of these verses, b u t also f r o m two
specific texts,
speaks
of the
(erai 8' 6
G\}{L-KOLC,
is i n t r o d u c e d
O p . M u n d . 89 a n d
whole world having
129. In the former
been brought
y.6a\Loq ETEXEICOGT]), a n d in the latter the
expressis
verbis:
E7UXOYI.£6fj(.Evo<;
Philo
to c o m p l e t i o n
8k TTJV
summary xoGiionodcuv
xetpaXaicoSei iunu> tprjo-lv . . . ( R e c k o n i n g again the c r e a t i o n of the 2
w o r l d in a t y p e of s u m m a r y . . . ) . T h u s Philo takes Gen. 2:4-5
to
refer to the creation of the i n c o r p o r e a l ideas ( O p . M u n d . 129-30), Gen.
2:6 t o the creation of the visible genera b u t n o t i n c l u d i n g m a n
(Op.
M u n d . 131-33), a n d G e n . 2:7 t o the creation of m a n
(Op.
M u n d . 134 f f . ) . (4) O p . M u n d . 136-72 p o r t r a y s the n o b i l i t y a n d original oneness of the first empirical m a n a n d also describes the creation of w o m a n , who
b e c o m e s for h i m the origin of desire a n d the b l a m e w o r t h y life.
This a c c o u n t is s u b s e q u e n t l y allegorized in terms of m i n d a n d senseperception. d. E x e g e s i s o f D e O p i f i c i o
Mundi
134
ff.
I n t e r m s of the p r e c e d i n g analysis of O p . M u n d . as a w h o l e , the i n t e r p r e t a t i o n of O p . M u n d . 134-35 that m o s t naturally suggests itself is that the vuv 7TXAO-6ei<; av6p<07RO<; of O p . M u n d . 134 is the generic earthly m a n , a n d the av6p(07ro<; xa-ra TTJV eixova 6eou yeyovox; TrpoTepov is the generic h e a v e n l y m a n , i.e. the rational n o u s in m a n t h a t was p a t t e r n e d after the i m a g e of the L o g o s . T h e aio-6r)To<; xal 1
In
Cf. Conf. L i n g . 6 2 - 6 3 , w h e r e P h i l o uses av8pcoTro<; in r e f e r e n c e t o t h e L o g o s . Conf. L i n g . 1 4 6 t h e L o g o s is e v e n referred t o as 6 x a x ' eixova avQpcoTroi;,
a title t h a t c a n n o t e a s i l y b e r e c o n c i l e d w i t h P h i l o ' s u s u a l u s e of t h e t e r m eixcov t o refer t o t h e L o g o s a n d 6 x a r ' eixova av9pcoTro<; t o refer t o t h e r a t i o n a l vou<; in m a n . See d i s c u s s i o n in Jervell, p p . 6 5 - 6 6 . 2
I n L e g . A l l . P h i l o d e a l s w i t h t h e s e c o n d c r e a t i o n a c c o u n t in a
totally
d i f f e r e n t f a s h i o n , n a m e l y as t h e b a s i s of a n e x t e n s i v e a n d r a t h e r i n v o l v e d a l l e g o r y of t h e soul.
30
PHILO'S UNDERSTANDING OF THE NATURE OF MAN
ITCI uipouc; avOpomoc; of O p . M u n d . 135, w h o is d e s c r i b e d as a CTUVGETOV, is the first empirical m a n , the species A d a m , c o m p o s e d of the t w o c o m p o n e n t " p a r t s " d e s c r i b e d in O p . M u n d . 134, a n d is the same as 1
the 7tptoTo<; avOpomoc of O p . M u n d . 136 ff- Several lines of a r g u m e n t c o n v e r g e t o s u p p o r t these c o n c l u s i o n s . (1) In O p . M u n d . 135 Philo speaks of the individual c o m p o s i t e m a n , a n d in 136 ff. he discusses the nature of the first
empirical
m a n , w h o is clearly the s a m e as the individual c o m p o s i t e m a n of 135 ( e x e l v o ? 8' 6 upcoTo? avOpioTOc). This c o m p o s i t e m a n is m a d e u p of yswSr)? OUAIA a n d 7rv£U[i.a 6sou. TEWST);; ouaia, h o w e v e r , c o r r e s p o n d s e x a c t l y t o the m a n of clay of O p . M u n d . 134, and, as can b e seen f r o m O p . M u n d . 139, the receiving of 7rv£U[i.a 6eou is t o b e e q u a t e d with the creation of m a n after the i m a g e of G o d : cm SE xal TYJV I^xV
APIATOC;
cpavepov'
ouckvl yap
ETspw 7rapaSEiyfi.aTi
xwv EV
ysvscTEi npbc, T/JV xaTacTxeuYjv AUTYJC E'OIXE xP^acrGat, FIOVIO § ' 10c;
sinov
TW SAUTOU Xoyw. §t,6 9Y)CT(,V D7REIX6VIO"(IA xal (ju(i7)fi.a yeyEvrjaOai TOUTOU
TOV av6p<0TOv eu,7IVEUA6EVTA sic, TO Tipoawuov. It is thus clear t h a t the interpretation that has b e e n suggested n o t o n l y fits in m o s t naturally with O p . M u n d . as a w h o l e , b u t also is m o s t e c o n o m i c a l in terms of the i m m e d i a t e c o n t e x t . (2) T h e presence of the t e r m s ysvo?, o^paylt;, vorjTo?, a n d dcriofi.aTO<; in O p . M u n d . 134 d o e s n o t as such preclude the possibility t h a t t h e m a n created after the i m a g e of G o d in O p . M u n d . 134 is the rational n o u s in empirical m a n rather than the ideal m a n in the technical P l a t o n i c sense. First of all, d r a w i n g a sharp contrast b e t w e e n the ideal m a n and the rational n o u s in empirical m a n is p r o b a b l y n o t justified, for the L o g o s , the ideal m a n , a n d the rational n o u s in empirical m a n are essentially identical t h r o u g h o u t m o s t of P h i l o ' s writings. T h u s it is not surprising that P h i l o applies s o m e of the same terms t o b o t h the ideal m a n a n d the rational n o u s in empirical man. Furthermore,
it is clear t h a t Philo d o e s n o t a l w a y s use the
t e r m tS£a in the technical P l a t o n i c sense, and t h u s the m e r e o c c u r r e n c e of this t e r m b y itself p r o v e s little. T h a t Philo writes ISEOC TIC; ( " a k i n d of i d e a , " or, " w h a t o n e m i g h t call an i d e a " ) rather t h a n s i m p l y t§£a further suggests that he is p r o b a b l y n o t using the t e r m t e c h n i c a l l y in this p a s s a g e . 1
2
T o describe m a n as a c o m p o s i t e (ouvOexov) is s i m p l y a n o t h e r w a y of g i v i n g e x p r e s s i o n to his d u a l n a t u r e . Cf., especially, M u t . Norn. 184, D e t . P o t . I n s . 1 3 9 . F o r v a r i o u s uses of t h e t e r m iSia. in P h i l o , see Index Leisegang. T h e t e r m YEVGC is discussed in d e t a i l b e l o w . 2
MAN'S HIGHER NATURE
31
(3) A n o t h e r a p p a r e n t difficulty is easily r e s o l v e d w h e n w e recall P h i l o ' s m u l t i p l e usage of the t e r m ^ U / r ) .
1
The
sense-perceptible,
i n d i v i d u a l m a n of O p . M u n d . 135, w h o s e f o r m a t i o n is c o m p o s i t e , consists of crcofi.a a n d if'uXT)- Yu^r) is i m m e d i a t e l y associated
with
7rvEU(jwt 6s1ov, a n d is held t o h a v e originated f r o m n o created thing whatsoever
(am' OUSEVOC; ysvY]T0ii TO rcapd-reav). O n the basis of our
earlier discussion of the dual nature of m a n in Philo, a d u a l i t y that m o s t frequently is expressed in t e r m s of a rational a n d irrational soul, it is clear that w h e n Philo here says t h a t the c o m p o s i t e m a n consists of b o d y and soul, crcou-a s h o u l d b e u n d e r s t o o d t o i n c l u d e the irrational soul. This irrational soul, the
p o w e r of sheer
animal
vitality in m a n , exists o n l y in c o n j u n c t i o n with the b o d y a n d t h u s understandably
can also b e referred to s i m p l y as crcou-a.
In O p . M u n d . 134, h o w e v e r , w h e n Philo states that the m a n of clay, the
vuv nXaaQsli; avOpiorcoc;, consists of crtou-a a n d
^uyyi,
a p p a r e n t l y d o e s n o t h a v e in m i n d the d i c h o t o m y of m a n ' s
he
higher
a n d l o w e r natures, b u t rather the t w o aspects of the irrational soul, i.e. b o d y a n d animal vitality. B o d y a n d soul in this case are t o g e t h e r to b e t h o u g h t of as c o m p r i s i n g w h a t Philo elsewhere refers t o either as o-wfi.oc or <\iuyji, i.e. the l o w e r or irrational p a r t of m a n ' s being. T h e m a i n s u p p o r t for this interpretation is, of course, t o be f o u n d in the attributes ascribed b y Philo t o the vuv nXctaQeic, av6pto7roc". H e is ataOrjTcx; TJSTJ (ISTSXMVTCOIOTYJTOC;,EX, ffiofiaToc; xal <^\>yr\c, AUVEATWE;,
avr)p Y) yuvrj, cpuo-EI 0VY]T6C;. B u t n o n e of these attributes of the vuv TzlaaQslc,
avOpomoc; fits the rational soul, that part of m a n that is
i m m o r t a l , a divine fragment, a n d identified with the d i v i n e Spirit. I n e v i t a b l y w e are driven to the c o n c l u s i o n —and this is o n e of the important
k e y s t o the exegesis of this p a s s a g e — t h a t P h i l o uses
<\iuyji in t w o q u i t e distinct senses in O p . M u n d . 134 a n d 135. T h u s , in his s u m m a r y
recapitulation
of the s t o r y of creation,
P h i l o interprets Gen. 2:7, in c o n j u n c t i o n with G e n . 1:27, t o refer to the creation of the generic c o m p o n e n t parts of m a n a n d their c o m b i n a t i o n in the i n d i v i d u a l , sense-perceptible, c o m p o s i t e m a n , i.e. the first empirical m a n , the species A d a m . In his usual fashion he interprets b o t h the creation of m a n
after the i m a g e of G o d
a n d the inbreathing of d i v i n e spirit t o refer to the essential similarity b e t w e e n m a n ' s rational soul a n d the divine L o g o s (cf. especially O p . M u n d . 139, 144, 146).
1
See a b o v e ,
pp. 14-16.
PHILO'S UNDERSTANDING OF THE NATURE OF MAN
32
Earlier in this chapter w e s a w that the irrational soul of m a n participates in the categories m a l e a n d female, whereas the rational soul d o e s n o t share in the realm of the sexual. I n a s m u c h as the m a n created after the i m a g e of G o d o f O p . M u n d . 134 is e q u i v a l e n t to, or, at least, closely related t o the rational soul of m a n , it w o u l d seem t h e n that the OUT' appev OOTE OYJXU
1
w h i c h is p r e d i c a t e d of h i m
s h o u l d b e interpreted as indicating asexuality rather t h a n b i s e x u a l i t y or a n d r o g y n e i t y . U n f o r t u n a t e l y , h o w e v e r , O p . M u n d . 134 has usually b e e n interpreted in terms of the a s s u m p t i o n that the m a n c r e a t e d XATA TYJV eixova 6EOU is e q u i v a l e n t to 6 yevixoc; av6pco7ioc; of
Leg. All. I I : 13 (see also O p . M u n d . 76, R e r . D i v . H e r . 164), w h o is d e s c r i b e d as containing in himself b o t h the male a n d the female genus. How
c o m e s he [ G o d ] , t h e n , t o f o r m o t h e r
wild beasts now, and not to be
satisfied
with those former ones ? F r o m the s t a n d p o i n t of e t h i c s w h a t w e m u s t s a y is t h i s . I n t h e r e a l m of c r e a t e d t h i n g s t h e g e n u s of wickedness
is a b u n d a n t , so t h a t
in
this
r e a l m t h e w o r s t t h i n g s are e v e r b e i n g p r o duced.
B u t f r o m t h e s t a n d p o i n t of
the
w o r l d of n a t u r e w e m u s t s a y t h a t f o r m e r l y during the s i x - d a y creation G o d w r o u g h t t h e g e n e r a a n d t h e o r i g i n a l s of t h e p a s s i o n s , w h e r e a s n o w h e is f a s h i o n i n g species
as w e l l . T h i s is w h y it s a y s ,
the he
m o u l d e d besides. T h a t w h a t were created in t h e first i n s t a n c e w e r e g e n e r a , is e v i d e n t from the words employed, " L e t the earth bring forth the living soul" not according t o species b u t " a c c o r d i n g t o g e n u s . " A n d w e find h i m in e v e r y i n s t a n c e w o r k i n g in t h i s w a y . B e f o r e t h e species h e c o m p l e t e s t h e g e n e r a , as h e d o e s also in t h e c a s e of man. man,
Having
first
formed
the
generic
in w h i c h S c r i p t u r e s a y s t h a t t h e r e is
t h e m a l e a n d t h e f e m a l e g e n u s , he a f t e r w a r d s b r i n g s to c o m p l e t i o n t h e Adam.
There are
at
least
identifying the ysvixoc; 1
species
2
t w o c o n v i n c i n g reasons, h o w e v e r , for n o t avGpto7roc;
of this passage with the av0pto7ioo;
T h i s e x p r e s s i o n a l s o o c c u r s in S o m . I I : 1 8 4 , a n d OUXE dppYjv . . . OUXE 0Y)X£ia is f o u n d in E b r . 2 1 2 . I n b o t h i n s t a n c e s t h e r e f e r e n c e is to a e u n u c h in c o n t r a s t to a whole m a n or w o m a n , a n d thus o b v i o u s l y asexuality rather t h a n b i s e x u a l i t y is m e a n t . 2
Leg. All. I I : 12-13.
MAN'S HIGHER NATURE
33
xat-a TYJV sixova 6sou of O p . M u n d . 134. These reasons are valid whether
the m a n
after
the i m a g e of G o d is u n d e r s t o o d t o b e
equivalent t o the rational soul in m a n , as maintained a b o v e , or, o n the other hand, is the idea (in the technical P l a t o n i c sense) of m a n ' s rational soul. (1) I n b o t h O p . M u n d . 134 and L e g . A l l . 1 1 : 1 2 - 1 3 the
terms
yevo? a n d iS*ea o c c u r . Usually, in b o t h texts these terms are t a k e n t o m e a n t h a t P h i l o is referring t o the idea of m a n in the technical P l a t o n i c sense. B u t as was seen a b o v e , in a c c o r d a n c e with the c o m mon
practice of his d a y , Philo uses iSsa in a n u m b e r of different
w a y s , a n d thus the m e a n i n g of the t e r m m u s t b e established each t i m e in relation t o its i m m e d i a t e c o n t e x t . T h e same is also true of the term yevoc,, w h i c h has a w i d e v a r i e t y of meanings in Philo's 1
w r i t i n g s . A c t u a l l y , w e h a v e b e e n able t o find n o instance in P h i l o where ysvoc; is u n a m b i g u o u s l y equivalent t o iS*ea in the technical P l a t o n i c sense, and, in at least o n e passage (Spec. Leg. 1:329), yevoc; is used as clearly distinct from iS*ea in this specific sense.
2
(2) In L e g . A l l . I I : 12 Philo ascribes the creation of TA ysvrj TCOV TRA6COV xal TAC. i§£ac. t o the sl;aY)fispoc;, i.e. the S i x - D a y creation. P r o b a b l y this term d o e s n o t include D a y One, h o w e v e r , for, as w a s seen a b o v e , Philo argues in O p . M u n d . 1-35 that b e c a u s e of the uniqueness of the intelligible w o r l d , D a y O n e is n o t r e c k o n e d with the following d a y s . B u t if this is so, t h e n the terms iSea and yevoc; in L e g . A l l . I I : 12 s h o u l d not b e t a k e n t o refer t o the ideal creation of D a y O n e b u t t o the generic sense-perceptible creation of d a y s two
t h r o u g h six, t o w h i c h also the yevixoc. av6pco7ioc. of L e g . A l l .
I I : 13 w o u l d t h e n
belong.
3
Inasmuch
as
the
yevixoc;
avQpcoTcoc.
contains within himself the male a n d the female sexes (yevr)), he is
1
See Index
2
Cf. A m m o n i u s , in Porphyrii
Commentaria
Leisegang, in Aristotelem
according to A m m o n i u s , TCOV
ISea, yevoc;. Isagogen
Graeca
sive V Voces
(ed. A d o l f u s B u s s e , in
I V , 3 [1891]), p. 44, lines 1-2, w h e r e P l a t o ,
is h e l d t o h a v e t a u g h t t h a t 6 Geo? e/et
ev eauxco
yevcov Te x a l elScov Ta exTuncofxaTa. If exTU7Tco!i.a h e r e is t h e e q u i v a l e n t of
ISea in t h e
technical
s i m p l e e q u a t i o n of Group 3
s. v.
of Essays
sense,
then this passage
yevo? a n d
ISea.
See
affords
evidence against
W o l f s o n , Religious
(1961), p . 48, w h e r e t h i s t e x t is referred
Philosophy.
a A
to.
A s e c o n d , a l t h o u g h less l i k e l y a l t e r n a t i v e , w o u l d b e t o i n t e r p r e t e£aT)U.epo<;
as i n c l u d i n g D a y O n e . I n this c a s e iSea w o u l d refer t o t h e c r e a t i o n of
the
i n t e l l i g i b l e w o r l d o n D a y O n e a n d yevoi; t o t h e c r e a t i o n of t h e s e n s e - p e r c e p t i b l e g e n e r a o n d a y s t w o t h r o u g h six. ALGHJ, III
-
^
PHILO'S UNDERSTANDING OF THE NATURE OF MAN
34
p r o b a b l y t o b e identified
w i t h the
generic earthly m a n
M u n d . 76, 134 and R e r . D i v . Her. 164.
of O p .
1
It seems p r o b a b l e , then, that the expression OUT' appsv OUTS 69jAu, w h i c h is p r e d i c a t e d of the m a n c r e a t e d after the i m a g e of G o d of Op.
Mund.
134, s h o u l d b e interpreted
as indicating
asexuality
rather t h a n bisexuality. T h e t e r m " a n d r o g y n o u s , " t h o u g h p e r h a p s technically equivalent
t o " b i s e x u a l , " is e v e n less accurate
when
used d e s c r i p t i v e l y of the m a n c r e a t e d after the i m a g e of G o d , since it is far m o r e m y t h o l o g i c a l l y o r i e n t e d t h a n is the w o r d " b i s e x u a l , " whereas
Philo's basic orientation
is n o t m y t h o l o g i c a l b u t
philo
2
sophical and e x e g e t i c a l . A d m i t t e d l y , in s o m e of the G n o s t i c s y s t e m s the t e r m " a n d r o g y n o u s " c a n describe t h a t w h i c h is o n l y p o t e n t i a l l y b u t not y e t a c t u a l l y m a l e or female, or, in other instances, neutralization of the male-female p o l a r i t y ,
3
the
b u t P h i l o refuses t o use
the w o r d at all in describing the nature of G o d , the L o g o s ,
and
the rational soul of m a n . P h i l o speaks of " m a l e " and " f e m a l e " b e c a u s e these are the terms 4
he finds in his Scriptural t e x t . H e speaks of " g e n u s " a n d " s p e c i e s " not
only because
of the
frequent
o c c u r r e n c e of the
expression
xaxa yivoc, in Gen. 1, b u t also b e c a u s e these terms are p a r t of the philosophical v o c a b u l a r y w i t h w h i c h he a p p r o a c h e s Scripture (cf. R e r . D i v . H e r . 164). Philo is n o t w o r k i n g within a
predominantly
m y t h o l o g i c a l f r a m e w o r k , b u t within the philosophical of genus a n d species, p o t e n t i a l i t y
framework
(Suvafj.it;) a n d a c t u a l i t y (Ivlpyeia).
T h e generic earthly m a n is said t o c o n t a i n within himself the m a l e a n d the female sexes insofar as h e is p o t e n t i a l l y either m a l e or female. This p a t t e r n is m o s t clearly seen in L e g . A l l . 1 1 : 4 0 ff., where P h i l o allegorizes the a c c o u n t of the creation of w o m a n o u t of the side of man:
1
6 8k [vouc,] 6£ac7dfj.£voc. YJV Tcpoxepov zlyjz Suvafj.iv xai xa6' l^iv
Cf. L e g . A l l . 1 : 3 1 , w h e r e
Philo
specifically
states
that
t h e r e are
two
g e n e r a of m e n , t h e o n e h e a v e n l y a n d t h e o t h e r e a r t h l y . T h e e a r t h l y m a n is generic j u s t as w e l l as t h e h e a v e n l y m a n , a n d t h u s t h e t e r m yevo? b y cannot b e used to decide
w h i c h m a n is
2
See below, A p p e n d i x B .
3
Cf.
According 4
Jervell,
pp. 161-65;
to Thomas
Bertil
itself
meant.
Gartner,
The
Theology
of
the
Gospel
( 1 9 6 1 ) , p p . 2 4 9 - 5 1 . See b e l o w , C h a p . I V , B , 2.
A s in t h e r e l a t i o n s h i p
between
G o d a n d Israel d e s c r i b e d in H o s e a or
t h a t b e t w e e n C h r i s t a n d t h e C h u r c h in E p h e s i a n s , P h i l o t o o uses t h e c a t e g o ries m a l e a n d f e m a l e t o d e s c r i b e t h e r e l a t i o n s h i p B u t t h i s is s i m p l y a f u n c t i o n a l - a n a l o g i c a l
between
God and man.
u s e of these c a t e g o r i e s a n d i n d i
c a t e s n o t h i n g a b o u t t h e a c t u a l n a t u r e of G o d as s u c h . O n t h e m o t i f of d i v i n e i m p r e g n a t i o n , see b e l o w , C h a p . I l l , E .
MAN'S LOWER NATURE
35
7]p£[i.oijcTav w v dTtOT£A£o-fj.a xal Ivspysiav yEyEVTjLiiv/jv xal xivoufjivrjv, 0au(j.d^£i. t £ xal dva90£yy£Tai 9do"xtL>v OTI OUX SCTTW dXXorpla auroij, dXXd o^oSpa olx£ia. T h u s t o interpret P h i l o ' s use of the categories male a n d female in the passages so far m e n t i o n e d as p r e d o m i n a n t l y m y t h o l o g i c a l in nature is t o d o v i o l e n c e t o the original c o n t e x t . I n d e e d it is possible, a l t h o u g h definite e v i d e n c e is lacking, that the expression oOV
appEv OUT£ OyjXu in O p . M u n d . 134 is written p o l e m i c a l l y w i t h
reference t o those w h o p i c t u r e d the d r a m a of creation in m y t h o l o g ical-sexual t e r m s .
1
Against such P h i l o w o u l d argue that the m a l e -
female p o l a r i t y is p a r t of the m o r t a l , c o r r u p t i b l e w o r l d of o-to[j.a a n d ai
C . MAN'S LOWER NATURE: THE REALM OF MALE AND FEMALE 1. The n p c o T o ?
"Av6pto7roc. (De Opificio
T h e v i t a of the npchToq
136ff.)
Mundi
avOpcoTioc,, the first actual or empirical
man, serves t o e x p l a i n the origin of sin in m a n ' s existence. T h e narrative c o n t a i n s s o m e of the m o s t clearly m y t h o l o g i c a l material in P h i l o ' s writings. It relates h o w m a n , w h o w a s c r e a t e d after the i m a g e of G o d , finds himself s u b j e c t t o d e a t h a n d c o r r u p t i o n a n d all m a n n e r of deceit a n d wickedness. T h a t P h i l o , in his i n t e r p r e t a t i o n of the Genesis a c c o u n t of the c r e a t i o n a n d fall of m a n , is n o t s i m p l y speaking a b o u t w h a t h a p p e n e d in the distant past b u t a b o u t m a n as he is t o d a y , is clear from the c o n c l u s i o n of this section of O p . M u n d : " S u c h is the life of those w h o in the b e g i n n i n g are in e n j o y ment
of i n n o c e n c e a n d s i m p l i c i t y of character,
vice to v i r t u e . "
but
later
prefer
e a r t h - b o r n dpx<]y£fY)q of the
entire
2
T h e TCPTOTOC, ixvGptoTroc;, the
race, was m o s t excellent (apurroc.) in each p a r t of his being. In b o t h b o d y a n d soul he greatly e x c e l l e d those w h o c a m e after h i m . H e w a s created b y G o d himself, a n d w a s t h u s truly xaXoc, xal dyaQo?, 3
i.e.
a perfect m a n , or m a n as he was m e a n t t o b e . This first
man
l i v e d a life of virtue a n d u n a l l o y e d bliss, attaining the v e r y limit 1
B r e h i e r , Les Idees,
p . 1 2 5 , refers t o t h e m y t h of t h e a n d r o g y n o u s
heavenly
m a n o c c u r r i n g in P h i l o " s o u s line f o r m e n e g a t i v e . " 2
3
O p . M u n d . 170.
Cf. C o l s o n a n d W h i t a k e r in Pinto
( L . C . L . ) I ( 1 9 2 9 ) , 108, n o t e a.
36
PHILO'S UNDERSTANDING OF THE NATURE OF MAN
of h u m a n
happiness.
1
H e exercised d o m i n i o n o v e r the
created
w o r l d , a n d all things m o r t a l t r e m b l e d before h i m a n d were o b e d i e n t t o h i m . A s was appropriate for a king, for w h o m it is fitting " t o b e s t o w titles o n his several s u b o r d i n a t e s , " the first m a n , A d a m , chose n a m e s for e v e r y representative of the animal k i n g d o m , a task h e was able t o p e r f o r m b e c a u s e G o d h a d g r a n t e d h i m the p o w e r of reason. A l l of the n a m e s he chose were fully apposite, for his p o w e r of reason, being still u n a l l o y e d (AXPATOC), w a s able t o receive the impressions m a d e b y b o d i e s a n d o b j e c t s in their true
reality.
P h i l o clearly attributes n o b i l i t y a n d excellence t o the first
2
man
in the t o t a l i t y of his being a n d not just t o his rational soul. T h u s sense-perception, a c c o r d i n g t o P h i l o , under the rightful rulership of m i n d , a c c u r a t e l y p o r t r a y e d t o the m i n d of the first m a n the o b j e c t s of
trie sense-perceptible w o r l d .
3
Likewise the b o d y , w h i c h G o d
m o u l d e d out of the purest a n d m o s t s u b t l y refined material a v a i l able, was created t o serve as " a sacred d w e l l i n g - p l a c e or t e m p l e 4
of the reasonable s o u l " (olxoc, TIC, TJ vewc, lepoc, ^ « x ^ Aoyixyjc,)- P h i l o thus pictures the first m a n as existing in a state of inner h a r m o n y a n d integrity, s e n s e - p e r c e p t i o n a n d b o d y n o t fighting against
the
sovereign m i n d , b u t c o m p l e t e l y subservient t o it. O p . M u n d . 151-52 follows as a direct c o n t i n u a t i o n of this d e s c r i p t i o n of the TipwToc av0p6)7IOC: But
since
no created thing
is
constant,
a n d m o r t a l t h i n g s n e c e s s a r i l y are l i a b l e t o c h a n g e s a n d r e v e r s e s , it c o u l d n o t b u t b e t h a t e v e n t h e first m a n s h o u l d e x p e r i e n c e s o m e ill f o r t u n e . A n d w o m a n b e c o m e s for h i m t h e b e g i n n i n g of
the
blameworthy
life. F o r so l o n g as h e w a s o n e , h e w a s l i k e t h e w o r l d a n d G o d in his singleness
and
r e c e i v e d in his s o u l t h e i m p r e s s i o n s m a d e b y t h e n a t u r e of e a c h , n o t a l l of t h e s e b u t as
many
as o n e
of
mortal
composition
c a n f i n d r o o m for. B u t w h e n w o m a n t o o was formed, beholding
a figure l i k e
his
o w n a n d a kindred form, he was gladdened b y t h e sight, a n d a p p r o a c h e d a n d g r e e t e d her. S h e , seeing n o living t h i n g m o r e like herself t h a n h e , is filled
with
happiness
a n d m o d e s t l y r e t u r n s his g r e e t i n g .
1
O p . M u n d . 144,
150.
2
O p . M u n d . 142, O p . M u n d . 139. O p . M u n d . 137.
148-50.
3
4
Love
MAN'S LOWER NATURE
37
s u p e r v e n e s , b r i n g s t o g e t h e r a n d fits one the divided
halves,
into
as it w e r e , of a
s i n g l e l i v i n g c r e a t u r e , a n d s e t s u p in e a c h of
t h e m a desire for f e l l o w s h i p
with
other with a view to the production t h e i r like. A n d t h i s desire b e g a t
the of
likewise
b o d i l y p l e a s u r e , w h i c h is t h e b e g i n n i n g of w r o n g s a n d v i o l a t i o n of l a w , a n d for t h e s a k e of w h i c h t h e y b r i n g o n
themselves
t h e life of m o r t a l i t y a n d w r e t c h e d n e s s lieu
of
that
of
immortality
and
in
bliss.
P h i l o here uses the t e r m sic. m o r e e x p l i c i t l y t o describe the inner integrity
a n d h a r m o n y of the
TipwToc avOpwTioc. T h e first
man
originally e x i s t e d in a state of u n i t y or oneness, a n d so l o n g as he r e m a i n e d in this state, he was like b o t h the w o r l d a n d G o d in his 1
singleness ((JLOVWO-IC). B u t this original state of oneness o r singleness was interrupted b y the appearance of w o m a n , w h o b e c a m e for the first m a n the ap^v) f?jc UTCOCITIOU £a>vjc. O p . M u n d . 151-52 indicates that the sin of the first m a n w a s the result of sexual desire. Desire (71660c) b e g a t b o d i l y pleasure (?) TWV o-WLidTwv v)Sov/)), a n d pleasure w a s the " b e g i n n i n g of w r o n g s a n d v i o l a t i o n of the l a w . " F o r its sake m a n k i n d e x c h a n g e d a life of i m m o r t a l i t y a n d bliss for one of m o r t a l i t y a n d w r e t c h e d n e s s . In turning t o the w o m a n a n d s u b m i t t i n g t o sexual desire, the
first
m a n b e c a m e i n v o l v e d in the created w o r l d in a n e w w a y , thus c h o o s i n g " t h a t fleeting a n d m o r t a l life, w h i c h is n o t life at all, b u t a p e r i o d of time (xpovoc) full of m i s e r y " ( O p . M u n d . 156). M a n s o u g h t for the fulfillment of his life in terms of the c r e a t e d w o r l d rather t h a n the Creator, a n d thus w a s d o o m e d t o d i e .
2
A p a r t f r o m O p . M u n d . 151-52, h o w e v e r , P h i l o d o e s n o t specifical ly m e n t i o n sexual desire as that w h i c h c a u s e d the first m a n t o sin, a n d in O p . M u n d . 156 ff. he treats the fall o f m a n in a m a n n e r m o r e like that of G e n e s i s : the serpent a p p r o a c h e s the w o m a n , d e c e i v e s her, a n d t h r o u g h her, the m a n as well. She is d e s c r i b e d as h a v i n g " a m i n d d e v o i d of steadfastness a n d firm f o u n d a t i o n , " as b e i n g responsible for the sin of the first 1
Cf. Q u a e s t . in G e n .
2
Som. 11:70.
3
Cf. D o d d , Bible
Cf.
3
and thus
man, inasmuch
as
1:42.
R o m . 1. and Greeks,
pp. 65-70, on
T h e basic idea underlying
t h e r o o t of t h i s v e r b ( o f t e n r e n d e r e d 7UO-TSUEIV in G r e e k ) is f i r m n e s s o r f i x i t y .
38
PHILO'S UNDERSTANDING OF THE NATURE OF MAN
t e m p t a t i o n — b u t n o t specifically sexual t e m p t a t i o n — c a m e to h i m through her.
1
In our exegesis of O p . M u n d . 134 it w a s c o n c l u d e d t h a t the avOptoTtoc XOCT' eixova TOU 6eou was n o t bisexual or a n d r o g y n o u s , a n d that the yevixoc av0pw7roc in L e g . A l l . I I : 13 is t o b e u n d e r s t o o d as bisexual in terms of the philosophical f r a m e w o r k of p o t e n t i a l i t y (8ova[xic) a n d actuality (svepyeia), but not a n d r o g y n o u s in a distinct ly m y t h o l o g i c a l sense. O p . M u n d . 151-52, h o w e v e r , contains several features w h i c h suggest that in this particular passage Philo is m a k i n g use of a source t h a t definitely contains the m y t h of the androgynous
man.
Particularly
striking
is the
sentence:
sp«c
8' eTuyevofievoc xaOarcep evoc 'C.&ou SLTTO, T[XYj[iaTa Sieo-TYjxoTa cruvayaywv eiC raiiTov apjioTTeTai, TCOOOV eviSpuadfievoc exaTSpw TTJC rcpo? 6<XTepov
xoivwviac sic, TTJV TOU ouoiou yevecriv. T h i s sentence, b o t h in its e n tirety a n d in its details (especially sptoc svoc C4>ou, 8ITTK T[XYj[xaTa), is s t r o n g l y reminiscent of P l a t o ' s m y t h of the a n d r o g y n o u s m a n (Symposium
189C-193D), w h i c h Philo speaks of so scornfully in l
Vit. Cont. 63. T h e t e r m eic—[>-sxP ^
Y^P
^v —also suggests the
m y t h of the a n d r o g y n o u s m a n . A s long as m a l e a n d female were part of o n e a n d the same being, t h e y were n o t t e m p t e d b y desire for e a c h other. T h e first m a n , a n d r o g y n o u s b y nature, was able t o g i v e himself fully t o G o d and w a s n o t distracted b y the attractions of the material w o r l d , chief of w h i c h is sexual desire (cf. L e g . All. I I : 7 4 , Spec. L e g . I.'9, Quaest. in Gen. Ill'.48). 2. Man's Present
2
Situation
a. M a n S y m b o l i z e s
Nouc, W o m a n
AIO-OYJO-IC.
In a n u m b e r of instances Philo argues that t o insist o n a literal
1
N o n e t h e l e s s , e v e n in O p . M u n d . 1 5 3 ff. t h e r e are a n u m b e r of
references
t h a t s u g g e s t t h a t P h i l o m a y still h a v e b e e n t h i n k i n g of s e x u a l desire as t h a t w h i c h c a u s e d t h e first m a n t o sin. T h u s , for e x a m p l e , his reference t o s e x u a l i n t e r c o u r s e in O p . M u n d .
161 is n o t i c e a b l y a b r u p t , s u g g e s t i n g
that he
had
this t h e m e in m i n d in t h e p r e c e d i n g p a r a g r a p h s as well, a n d t h a t i t is m a i n l y in reference t o t h i s m o t i f t h a t h e i n t e r p r e t s t h e G e n e s i s a c c o u n t of t h e fall. L i k e w i s e in O p . M u n d .
167, although admittedly,
in p a r t a t least,
simply
f o l l o w i n g the o r d e r of t h e G e n e s i s n a r r a t i v e , P h i l o is a g a i n s o m e w h a t a b r u p t in his reference t o t h e b i r t h p a n g s of t h e w o m a n as p a r t of t h e " w a g e s p a i d by
p l e a s u r e . " F u r t h e r m o r e , it w o u l d a p p e a r p r o b a b l e t h a t w h e n h e
t o b e c o m i n g "slaves t o a p a s s i o n g r i e v o u s a n d h a r d t o h e a l " h e h a s
refers sexual
desire in m i n d , for t h i s is t h e m a n n e r in w h i c h h e f r e q u e n t l y refers t o this p a r t i c u l a r p a s s i o n (cf. L e g . A l l . 1 1 : 7 4 , S p e c . L e g . 1 : 9 , Q u a e s t . in G e n . 1 1 1 : 4 8 ) . 2
S e e b e l o w , A p p e n d i x D , for f u r t h e r d i s c u s s i o n
of P h i l o ' s
(a) use of t h e
MAN'S LOWER NATURE
39
interpretation of certain parts of the creation narrative is n o t o n l y t o miss the real p o i n t of the passage in question and t o e x h i b i t c o n s i d e r a b l e intellectual n a i v e t e , b u t m a y e v e n b e an act of great i m p i e t y , insofar as this m a y i n v o l v e attributing certain
unworthy
1
actions to G o d . P h i l o ' s one great interest in the Genesis a c c o u n t of the creation a n d fall of m a n is in terms of w h a t
this material
has t o s a y a b o u t c o n t e m p o r a r y m a n . T h e narratives are SsiyfiaTa TUTCCOV ITC' dXXyjyopiav TcapaxaXoDvTa x a T a T<X? oV UTCOVOIWV
(Op.
OLKOBOGSIC,
M u n d . 1 5 7 ) . I n t e r p r e t e d allegorically, the s t o r y of the
fall
tells not just of the fall of the first m a n b u t of the origin of sin in the life of E v e r y m a n . T h u s in O p . M u n d . 157 Philo explains t h a t the serpent is a s y m b o l of YJSOVY), a n d in 165 he states that the m a n c o r r e s p o n d s t o vouc a n d the w o m a n t o aio-6y)o-i?. In L e g . All. I I : 19, after stating t h a t the a c c o u n t of w o m a n ' s creation o u t of the side of m a n is, w h e n t a k e n literally, of the nature of a m y t h , on
2
Philo goes
to speak of the t w o parts of the soul, vouc and ai
c o n c l u d e s with
the
statement
that
Moses'
"immediate
and
concern
is just this, t o i n d i c a t e the origin of a c t i v e s e n s e - p e r c e p t i o n . " was fitting,
P h i l o maintains, " t h a t the creation of m i n d
It
should
be f o l l o w e d i m m e d i a t e l y b y that of sense-perception, t o b e a helper a n d ally t o i t " (Leg. All. 1 1 : 2 4 ) . A g a i n in L e g . A l l . I I : 7 3 w e find the same p a t t e r n : G o d first m a d e the m i n d , i.e. the m a n , t h e n sense-perception, the w o m a n . B u t w e are n o t t o t h i n k of these as h a v i n g b e e n created at different times, for "it is p o t e n t i a l l y only, as o b j e c t s of t h o u g h t , that t h e y differ in a g e ; b u t in actual time t h e y are equal in a g e " (SUVOCLISI S S VC
S'KJVJ
auTwv at YjXixiai. Stdcpopoi vooiifisvai. JIOVOV, XP° !
Sense-perception
)
lo-yjXixe?).
and m i n d are c o m p o n e n t parts of m a n ' s
soul.
O n l y in the sense that vou? was created t o rule o v e r odaQ-qaiq a n d thus in order of i m p o r t a n c e l o g i c a l l y p r e c e d e s aio-UYjcnc c a n it b e said t o b e older. This use of m a n to s y m b o l i z e vouc a n d w o m a n al'o-Orjo-ic is f o u n d throughout
Philo's writings a n d is the m a i n d e v i c e b y w h i c h he
relates the creation narratives t o m a n ' s present s i t u a t i o n .
3
a n d r o g y n o u s m a n motif, a n d (b) u n d e r s t a n d i n g of t h e c r e a t i o n of woman. Cf. L e g . A l l . 1 : 4 3 . See also O p . M u n d . 1 5 4 . B u t see C h a p . I , B , 4 o n Philo's u s e of t h e t e r m " m y t h . " See, e.g., L e g . A l l . 1 1 1 : 4 9 ; P o s t . C . 1 7 7 ; M i g r . A b r . 1 0 0 ; F u g . 1 8 8 ; S o m . 1 : 2 4 6 ; Q u a e s t . in G e n . L 2 5 , 37, 4 5 - 4 9 , 5 2 ; 1 1 : 4 9 ; 1 1 1 : 3 1
2
3
40
PHILO'S UNDERSTANDING OF THE NATURE OF MAN
b. P h i l o ' s to
Use of F e m a l e
his E v a l u a t i o n
T e r m i n o l o g y in
of Man's
P h i l o ' s use of w o m a n t o s y m b o l i z e creation narratives b u t
Irrational aio-Gyjtnc
Relationship Soul
is n o t l i m i t e d t o the
is f o u n d in c o n n e c t i o n w i t h other
Old
T e s t a m e n t passages as well. Of special interest here, is t h a t a definite, a l t h o u g h b y n o m e a n s uniform, correlation exists b e t w e e n his use of female t e r m i n o l o g y a n d his e v a l u a t i o n of m a n ' s irrational soul, particularly
al'o-Gyjcnc.
T h e relationship m a y b e stated in this w a y :
F e m a l e t e r m i n o l o g y o c c u r s m o r e frequently a n d receives n o t i c e a b l y greater emphasis in those instances where P h i l o describes m a n ' s irrational soul in s t r o n g l y p e j o r a t i v e terms t h a n in passages where, h e evaluates the irrational soul in neutral or positive t e r m s .
1
Indeed,
it is precisely b y e x p l o i t i n g the female t e r m i n o l o g y of the B i b l i c a l text
that
Philo most
clearly expresses his d e p r e c i a t i o n of
the
irrational soul a n d of the perishible realm of creation. This p e j o r a t i v e use of female t e r m i n o l o g y t o describe irrational soul a n d the created w o r l d is f o u n d t h r o u g h o u t
man's Philo's
writings. It is particularly frequent in L e g . A l l . a n d Quaest. in Gen. H i s depreciation of actual w o m a n a n d of female s e n s e - p e r c e p t i o n are
frequently
so closely intertwined
that
n o clear
separation
b e t w e e n the t w o can b e m a d e . P h i l o ' s usual practice is t o s p e a k disparagingly of actual w o m a n o n the basis of the literal m e a n i n g of a t e x t a n d then t o allegorize the passage in t e r m s of sensep e r c e p t i o n . I n s o m e instances, h o w e v e r , his p e j o r a t i v e references t o the female are c o n f i n e d t o actual w o m a n , a n d in other cases refer o n l y t o sense-perception. B u t n o w h e r e are these t w o foci really far apart, for it is precisely P h i l o ' s d e p r e c i a t i o n of w o m a n that per mits h i m t o use her as a s y m b o l of sense-perception, and, o n the other h a n d ,
his castigation
of female sense-perception a n d
the
material w o r l d w h i c h leads in turn t o a further d e v a l u a t i o n of w o m a n . It is certainly n o t c o i n c i d e n t a l that h e emphasizes
the
female nature of sense-perception p r e d o m i n a n t l y in t h o s e instances where his e v a l u a t i o n
of sense-perception is d e c i d e d l y n e g a t i v e .
T h e natural weakness a n d susceptibility of w o m a n t o t e m p t a t i o n has already b e e n n o t e d in P h i l o ' s a c c o u n t of the fall of the avSpcuTtoc.
1
See
towards 2
Cf.
2
A g a i n a n d again he returns t o this t h e m e
Appendix man's I Tim.
E
for
additional
irrational
2:14,
I Pet.
soul.
3:7.
material
on
Philo's
Ttpcuxoc
throughout
varying
attitude
MAN'S LOWER NATURE
41
his writings. It is the w o m a n ' s nature t o b e d e c e i v e d rather t h a n t o reflect d e e p l y .
1
" I t w a s the m o r e imperfect and i g n o b l e element,
the female, that m a d e a b e g i n n i n g of transgression a n d lawlessness, while the m a l e m a d e the b e g i n n i n g of r e v e r e n c e a n d m o d e s t y a n d 2
all g o o d , since he w a s better a n d m o r e p e r f e c t . "
Sinning results
3
f r o m weakness, a n d it is the female w h o is w e a k . W o m a n was " t h e b e g i n n i n g of e v i l " a n d led the m a n i n t o " a life of v i l e n e s s . "
4
In
answer t o the question w h y it was the w o m a n w h o first ate of the fruit
of the tree a n d o n l y afterwards
the m a n
(Gen. 3:6),
Philo
writes t h a t " a c c o r d i n g t o the literal m e a n i n g the p r i o r i t y (of the w o m a n ) is m e n t i o n e d with emphasis. F o r it was fitting t h a t m a n s h o u l d rule o v e r i m m o r t a l i t y a n d e v e r y t h i n g g o o d , b u t w o m a n o v e r death a n d e v e r y t h i n g v i l e . " W i t h great
5
f r e q u e n c y Philo associates the w o m e n of v a r i o u s
Scriptural t e x t s w i t h particular evils a n d vices. T h u s the t w o w i v e s of L a m e c h (Gen. 4) are allegorized as " t w o ill-judging j u d g m e n t s . "
6
In discussing w h e r e Cain g o t his wife (Gen. 4 : 1 7 ) , P h i l o m a i n t a i n s that the t e r m understanding."
" w i f e " stands for " t h e o p i n i o n h e l d b y a godless 7
T h e wife of P o t i p h a r , w h o bids J o s e p h lie w i t h
her a n d e n j o y her e m b r a c e s (Gen. 39), is allegorized in S o m . I I : 106 as b o d i l y pleasure. T h e r e are a considerable n u m b e r of passages w h e r e P h i l o s i m p l y affirms the inferiority of the female t o the m a l e . T h e m a l e is m o r e 8
c o m p l e t e t h a n the female, the m a n superior t o the w o m a n . I n d e e d , the female is n o t h i n g else t h a n an imperfect m a l e . falls far short masculine.
10
9
T h e feminine
of the p r e - e m i n e n c e w h i c h a l w a y s b e l o n g s t o the
In the case of v o t i v e offerings, w h e n o n e has p l e d g e d
himself as an offering, a m a n is t o b e assessed at 200 a w o m a n at o n l y 1 2 0 .
11
drachmas,
In s u c c e e d i n g t o p r o p e r t y , a m a n is t o t a k e
p r e c e d e n c e o v e r a w o m a n , just as he takes p r e c e d e n c e o v e r her in
1
Quaest.
in G e n .
2
Quaest.
in G e n . 1 : 4 3 .
3
Quaest.
in G e n . 1 1 1 : 3 -
4
Quaest.
in
5
Quaest.
in G e n . 1 : 3 7 .
6
7
Gen. 1:45.
Det. Pot. Ins. Post.
1:46.
50.
C . 34.
8
Spec. L e g . 1:200-201.
9
Q u a e s t . in E x . I : 7, Q u a e s t . in G e n .
1 0
F u g . 5 1 ; see a l s o Q u a e s t . in G e n . 1 : 2 7 .
1 1
S p e c . L e g . 1 1 : 3 3 - Cf. L e v . 2 7 : 1 - 8 .
1:25.
PHILO'S UNDERSTANDING OF THE NATURE OF MAN
42 1
nature.
N o t unreasonably, argues P h i l o , does the L a w d e n y w i v e s
a n d virgins full c o n t r o l o v e r their v o w s a n d permit these t o b e anulled b y h u s b a n d s a n d fathers should t h e y d i s a p p r o v e of t h e m , for
the latter are still y o u n g a n d i n e x p e r i e n c e d a n d the
b e c a u s e of their irresponsibility (soyepzia.), is n o t t o their h u s b a n d ' s
advantage.
former,
frequently swear w h a t
2
T h r o u g h o u t his writings P h i l o associates a great variety of evils with the female, a n d uses female t e r m i n o l o g y in close c o n j u n c t i o n with
such 3
enslaved; 5
slavish;
passions;
highly
sluggish; 7
opinions;
vice, 1 0
pejorative
unmanly, 6
expressions
nerveless
as
lifeless,
diseased,
(xarsayw?), effeminate;
4
mean,
a c c u s t o m e d t o be d e c e i v e d , akin to
passion;
8
injustice
of
the
bestial
multitudes;
9
vain
softness, death, e v e r y t h i n g vile, the m o r e i m p e r f e c t a n d
ignoble element, transgressions a n d lawlessness, beginning of evil, d e p r a v i t y , night, darkness, a m i x e d m a s s ; a knave. As
1 1
takes pleasure in b e i n g
1 2
already n o t e d , P h i l o ' s disparaging c o m m e n t s a b o u t
actual
w o m a n usually serve m a i n l y as a k i n d of preface to his subsequent remarks
a b o u t the female c r e a t e d w o r l d , particularly
sense-per
c e p t i o n . F o r e x a m p l e , allegorizing o n the basis of the
Genesis
a c c o u n t of the fall of m a n , Philo p o i n t s o u t in O p . M u n d . 165-66 that pleasure (the serpent) is n o t able t o d e c e i v e m i n d (the m a n ) directly,
but
o n l y b y means
of sense-perception
(the
woman).
A l w a y s desiring t o meet w i t h a lover, pleasure seeks for panders (fj.ao-Tpo7to[) t o aid her in this quest. O n c e she has ensnared
the
senses, t h r o u g h their p r o c u r e m e n t she is easily able t o bring the m i n d under her c o n t r o l . W h e n P h i l o states that w o m a n ' s nature is t o b e d e c e i v e d rather than to reflect d e e p l y , he i m m e d i a t e l y adds the " d e e p e r m e a n i n g , " n a m e l y that the senses are d e l u d e d b y the o b j e c t s of sense-per1
2
Spec. L e g . I I : 124. S e e N u m . 2 7 : 8 - 1 1 . S p e c . L e g . 1 1 : 2 4 . Cf. N u m . 3 0 : 4 ff.
3
Leg. All.
4
Gig.
Cf. V i t . M o s . I I :243 ft.
11:97.
4.
5
Agric. 73.
6
Abr.
7
Q u a e s t . in G e n . 1 : 3 3 ,
8
Sacr. A . C. 103.
9
Gig.
150. I V : 15.
5. 128.
1 0
Fug.
1 1
Q u a e s t . in G e n . I-.33, 37, 43, 45, 9 2 ;
1 2
Agric. 73.
11:14.
MAN'S LOWER NATURE
43
c e p t i o n a n d then pass on this infection to the sovereign m i n d .
1
W h e r e a s the male element in the soul is directed t o w a r d s G o d , the female p a r t of the soul " c l i n g s to all that is b o r n a n d
perishes,
stretching out its faculties like a h a n d t o c a t c h b l i n d l y at c o m e s its w a y . "
what
2
Therefore, one s h o u l d n o t hearken to the w i c k e d senses, P h i l o argues, for like such evil w o m e n as P o t i p h a r ' s wife (Gen. 3 9 : 1 ff.) a n d the Midianite w o m a n w h o m Phinehas pierced w i t h his spear (Num.
25:7-8), t h e y h a v e b r o u g h t an u n t o l d host of mischiefs
u p o n the m i n d . F u n c t i o n i n g as an unruly m o b , t h e y h a v e set off a great c o n f l a g r a t i o n against the m i n d .
3
W h e n the superior
mind
cleaves t o a n d b e c o m e s o n e with sense-perception, "it resolves itself into the inferior order of the flesh, into sense-perception, the m o v i n g cause of the p a s s i o n s . "
1
Philo closely associates s e n s e - p e r c e p t i o n
with the b l o o d - s o u l (rj evai[i,o; tyuxt}), the life principle in animals, and claims that this irrational part of m a n has kinship w i t h m a t e r n a l and female line b u t has n o part in the m a l e l i n e .
5
the No
one w h o desires the life of the b l o o d c a n b e c o m e an heir of d i v i n e things. and
6
Man is to leave b e h i n d feminine, sense-perceptible passion,
to g i v e forth as incense "the
fortitude."
m a n l y reasoning s c h o o l e d
in
7
• Q u a e s t . in G e n . 1 : 4 6 . Cf. 1 : 3 3 . 2
S p e c . L e g . l i t : 1 7 S . A l t h o u g h Phik> a r g u e s in a n u m b e r of p a s s a g e s t h a t
k n o w l e d g e is d e p e n d e n t other
instances
he
on sense-perception
rules
out
the
(see b e l o w , A p p e n d i x E ) , in
cooperation
of t h e
senses
in
obtaining
k n o w l e d g e . Cf. e s p e c i a l l y Cher. 4 0 - 4 1 . S e n s e - p e r c e p t i o n is b y n a t u r e b l i n d , b e i n g irrational. I t is t h e m i n d t h a t c o n f e r s s i g h t body's
eyes
survey
only
the
surface
of
things
(Leg. A l l . I l l : 108). T h e and
require the
external
a s s i s t a n c e of light, w h e r e a s t h e m i n d p e n e t r a t e s t o t h e v e r y h e a r t of m a t e r i a l t h i n g s , o b s e r v i n g their i n n e r q u a l i t i e s . M o r e i m p o r t a n t , h o w e v e r , t h e m i n d is a l s o a b l e t o g r a s p t h e n a t u r e of i m m a t e r i a l r e a l i t y , impossible
for
sense-perception
to
do
(Virt.
something
totally
11-12).
A l t h o u g h h e u s u a l l y d o e s n o t e x p l i c i t l y m a k e this d i s t i n c t i o n ,
it is clear
t h a t P h i l o is referring to t w o k i n d s of k n o w l e d g e , t h a t of t h e m a t e r i a l w o r l d and
t h a t of t h e i n c o r p o r a l i d e a s a n d of G o d ( Q u a e s t . in G e n . 1 1 1 : 3 ) .
3
L e g . A l l . I l l : 234-43.
4
Leg. All. I I : o .
5
Rer. D i v . H e r . 60-61. R e r . D i v . H e r . 63-64.
5
6
7
L e g . A l l . I l l : 1 1 . T h e c o m b i n a t i o n aia9rjT6v 7rd0o:; is n o t f o u n d e l s e w h e r e
in P h i l o . C o h n , in L . C o h n , e t al., Die deutscher
Ubersetzung,
III
Werke
( 1 9 1 9 ) , p . 89,
von Philos
von Alexandria
in
n o t e 4, c o n j e c t u r e s t h a t cdo-0r|T6v
s h o u l d b e r e p l a c e d b y (X'ICTOTJOIV x a i , a r e a d i n g t h a t w o u l d fit P h i l o ' s g e n e r a l u s a g e far b e t t e r .
44
PHILO'S UNDERSTANDING OF THE NATURE OF MAN It is clear, then, t h a t Philo extensively e x p l o i t s female
termi
n o l o g y as a v e h i c l e for expressing his wide-spread depreciation of the created w o r l d . A l t h o u g h in s o m e parts of his writings he speaks m o s t a p p r e c i a t i v e l y of the g o o d things of creation, at other times he sees all c o n t a c t with the created w o r l d as a powerful hindrance t o the life of virtue. T h e female, sense-perceptible, created w o r l d stands as a constant threat to m a n ' s existence.
CHAPTER
THE
THREE
CATEGORIES MALE A N D FEMALE IN RELATIONSHIP
TO SOTERIOLOGY
AND PROPHETIC
INSPIRATION
P u t v e r y simply, m a n realizes his true nature b y forsaking the transient, ephemeral, material w o r l d , g i v i n g himself w h o l l y t o the quest for virtue, a n d o p e n i n g himself c o m p l e t e l y t o receive the grace of G o d . T h e nature of this flight from the realm of the c r e a t e d to that of the divine o c c u p i e s a central place in Philo's writings, a n d it is within this c o n t e x t that s o m e of the m o s t striking occurrences of the categories male a n d female are t o b e found. I n d e e d , as will b e seen, Philo uses the categories m a l e and female in describing progress in the pursuit a n d k n o w l e d g e of G o d n o t o n l y frequently but
in a m a n n e r so integrally c o n n e c t e d with the basic structure
o f his t h o u g h t t h a t their e m p l o y m e n t c a n n o t b e accidental or arbitrary.
1
A. BECOMING MALE In v i e w of P h i l o ' s s t r o n g l y disparaging attitude t o w a r d s w o m a n and the female as well as his glorification of the male, b u t m o r e particularly in the light of his identification of the female w i t h sense-perception a n d the material w o r l d , a n d the male with the rational soul, it is n o t surprising t o find that progress in the m o r a l and
religious life i n v o l v e s forsaking the realm of the
female.
A l t h o u g h P h i l o does n o t himself use the e x a c t expression, this process m i g h t well b e described b y the phrase " b e c o m i n g m a l e . "
2
1
T h e r e a d e r is referred e s p e c i a l l y t o V o l k e r , Fortschritt, for a m o r e g e n e r a l s u r v e y of P h i l o ' s t e a c h i n g s o n p r o g r e s s in t h e m o r a l a n d religious life. 2
T h e m a i n d i v i s i o n s in this c h a p t e r d o n o t reflect v a r i o u s s t a g e s or l e v e l s of d e v e l o p m e n t in t h e religious life. T h e y are s i m p l y a f o r m a l m e a n s of d e s c r i b i n g v a r i o u s a s p e c t s of a single p r o c e s s a n d i n e v i t a b l y r e s u l t in a c e r t a i n artificiality. M o s t of w h a t P h i l o s a y s a b o u t m a n ' s g r o w t h in v i r t u e a n d p i e t y is n o t in s y s t e m a t i c f o r m b u t is s c a t t e r e d t h r o u g h o u t his w r i t i n g s , s o m e of w h i c h , h o w e v e r , for e x a m p l e , R e r . D i v . H e r . , d e a l m a i n l y w i t h t h i s s u b j e c t . I t is e a s y t o " d i s c o v e r " a k i n d of u n i t y in P h i l o , or, o n t h e o t h e r h a n d , e x a m p l e s of i n c o n s i s t e n c y , t h a t are n o t r e a l l y p r e s e n t in t h e w r i t i n g s t h e m s e l v e s . P h i l o f r e q u e n t l y a d o p t s d i f f e r e n t m e t h o d s of a r g u m e n t a t i o n or
4
SOTERIOLOGY AND PROPHETIC INSPIRATION
6
This motif is seen m o s t clearly in Quaest. in E x . 1 : 8 and
in
Quaest. in Gen. I I : 4 9 . In Quaest. in E x . 1 : 8 Philo offers an inter pretation of E x . 1 2 : 5 , where G o d c o m m a n d s that a l a m b , a male and a year o l d , b e taken f r o m a m o n g the sheep or goats for the Passover meal. W h y is a sheep chosen ? Symbolically, as I have said, it indicates perfect progress, and at the same time the male. For progress is indeed nothing else than the giving up of the female gender b y changing into the male, since the female gender is material, passive, corporeal and sense-perceptible, while the male is active, rational, incorporeal and more akin to mind and thought. This passage m u s t b e interpreted in terms of the usual m e a n i n g Philo gives t o the Passover. T h r o u g h o u t his writings, wherever he takes time to explain the deeper, underlying, i.e. the allegorical, meaning of this feast, he interprets it as a "crossing o v e r " from the realm of the material, sense-perceptible w o r l d t o that of m i n d and ultimately to G o d himself. It especially signifies the forsaking of the b o d y and the passions, w h i c h are s y m b o l i z e d b y the land of E g y p t .
1
This is the interpretation of the Passover w h i c h is also found in the c o n t e x t of Quaest. in E x . 1 : 8 ;
2
it p r o v i d e s one of the
main
clues for the exegesis of the passage. Quaest. in E x . l:y
sheds further light o n the m e a n i n g of what I
h a v e called b e c o m i n g male. In answer t o the question w h y Moses c o m m a n d s a "perfect male sheep of one y e a r " to be taken for the Passover, Philo asserts that a c c o r d i n g t o "the deeper
meaning,
progress t o w a r d p i e t y and w o r t h y holiness ought to be b o t h male and of a year's ( d u r a t i o n ) . " A s in 1 : 8 , so also here, the sheep is taken t o s y m b o l i z e progress, an interpretation w h i c h Philo
elsewhere
3
holds is suggested b y the term Ttp6(3ocTov itself. " A year's ( d u r a t i o n ) " sets of a r g u m e n t s for d e a l i n g w i t h t h e s a m e o r s i m i l a r p r o b l e m s . T h e d e t a i l s of a n y o n e set of a r g u m e n t s , a l t h o u g h n o t a l w a y s c o m p l e t e l y c o n s i s t e n t w i t h t h o s e of a n o t h e r , n o n e t h e l e s s i n t e r n a l l y u s u a l l y fit t o g e t h e r quite convincingly. 1
Cf. e s p e c i a l l y C o n g r . 106. See also S p e c . L e g . 1 1 : 1 4 7 ; S a c r . A . C . 6 3 ; M i g r . A b r . 25 ; V i t . M o s . I I : 2 2 4 ; L e g . A l l . I l l : 94, 165 ; R e r . D i v . H e r . 1 9 2 , 255. 2
Cf. e s p e c i a l l y Q u a e s t . in E x . 1 : 2 , 4. I n 1 : 4 P h i l o w r i t e s t h a t t h e d e e p e r s i g n i f i c a n c e of t h e P a s s o v e r is r e a l i z e d w h e n s o u l s " b e g i n t o g i v e u p t h e p u r s u i t s of y o u t h a n d t h e i r terrible disorder a n d . . . c h a n g e to a b e t t e r a n d o l d e r s t a t e , " a n d also w h e n there is a " p a s s i n g o v e r " f r o m t h e b o d y , t h e senses, a n d e v e n f r o m one's o w n t h o u g h t s . 3
See Sacr. A . C . 1 1 2 , C o n g r . 106, L e g . A l l . I l l : 1 6 5 , Q u a e s t . in E x . 1 : 3 . P h i l o a p p a r e n t l y ( a n d p r o b a b l y c o r r e c t l y ) d e r i v e s rcp6(3aTOv f r o m npoficdveiv,
BECOMING MALE
47
signifies completeness, for " t h e year . . . holds e v e r y t h i n g c o n t a i n e d within itself"
(1:8), a fact, P h i l o argues in Spec. L e g . I V : 2 3 5 ,
w h i c h is clear from the v e r y t e r m eviauroc.
1
It is quite clear, then, especially in v i e w of Philo's
invariable
interpretation of the " d e e p e r m e a n i n g " of the Passover, that t o b e c o m e male m e a n s essentially t o forsake the material, sense-per ceptible realm of the female in favor of the sphere of the m i n d a n d that w h i c h is divine. This interpretation is borne o u t b y Quaest. in Gen. 1 1 : 4 9 ,
the
s e c o n d m a i n passage where the m o t i f of b e c o m i n g male o c c u r s . Philo here c o m m e n t s o n the manner in which N o a h and his wife, a n d his sons and his son's wives, went in and out of the ark. After a c c o u n t i n g for the literal w o r d i n g of the text (Gen. 8:18), particular ly w h y it w a s that o n entering the ark m e n went in with m e n and women
with
together,
2
women, but
o n leaving it m e n
and
w o m e n were
P h i l o p r o c e e d s to explain the deeper meaning,
which
pertains t o the soul's washing off a n d cleansing its sins. W h e n the time for such cleansing arrives, " m a n should join w i t h m a n , (that is) the sovereign m i n d like a father s h o u l d j o i n with its
particular
t h e b a s i c m e a n i n g of w h i c h — t o s t e p f o r w a r d , t o a d v a n c e — i s n o t far f r o m t h a t of npoxonrj.
llpoPorrov w a s o r i g i n a l l y u s e d of " s m a l l c a t t l e , s h e e p
g o a t s , w h i c h in p r i m i t i v e m i x e d h e r d s walk in front animals" 'O by
(Liddell-Scott,
and
(TTpo^aivei) of t h e larger
s.v.).
7ipox6irTcov, t h e m a n w h o is m a k i n g p r o g r e s s , is f r e q u e n t l y
contrasted
P h i l o w i t h 6 tpauXoc or 6 (piXrjSovoc, o n the o n e h a n d , a n d 6 TEXEIO? or 0
oof6q,
o n t h e o t h e r . T h e g o a l of 6 rcpoxoreTcov (also 6 daxrjTrji;) is u s u a l l y d e
s c r i b e d as u.ETpLco7ra0Eicc in c o n t r a s t to t h e p e r f e c t m a n ' s g o a l of f r e e d o m f r o m the p a s s i o n s exemplified
by
(dirdOEia). T h e m a n of p r o g r e s s , as
Abraham and
Jacob,
has
need
of
complete frequently
daxvjcH!; a n d
u.d6rjaic;,
w h e r e a s t h e p e r f e c t m a n , as e x e m p l i f i e d b y I s a a c a n d also M o s e s , is TEXEIOI; cpiicJEo. I t is n o t p o s s i b l e to reconcile c o m p l e t e l y t h e v a r i o u s w a y s in
which
P h i l o allegorizes t h e P a t r i a r c h s . T h u s , for e x a m p l e , w h e r e a s ao-xvjatc;, u.d6rjo-!.c;, and
cpuCTt?, r e p r e s e n t e d
respectively
by Jacob, Abraham,
and Isaac,
often
refer to t h r e e d i f f e r e n t t y p e s of m e n , in o t h e r i n s t a n c e s t h e y are p r e s e n t e d as t h r e e c h a r a c t e r traits of e v e r y m a n . Cf. t h e e x t e n s i v e references
to the Greek philosophical
discussion,
with
b a c k g r o u n d as well as t o P h i l o ,
in
1
Cf. P l a t o , Cratylus
2
T h e s e a c t i o n s m a d e it clear t h a t it w a s r i g h t for h u s b a n d s a n d w i v e s
to
V o l k e r , Fortschritt,
pp.
154-350. 410 D .
a b s t a i n f r o m s e x u a l i n t e r c o u r s e w h i l e in t h e a r k b u t w e r e t o c o m e t o g e t h e r again
and
"sow
s e e d in a c c o r d a n c e
" A f t e r so g r e a t a d e s t r u c t i o n
with
nature" upon leaving
the
of all t h o s e w h o w e r e o n e a r t h " it w a s
ark. not
fitting o r l a w f u l to i n d u l g e in l u x u r y , b u t w a s o n t h e c o n t r a r y a p p r o p r i a t e "to s y m p a t h i z e w i t h w r e t c h e d h u m a n i t y , as b e i n g kin to it" ( Q u a e s t . in G e n . II: 9). 4
8
4
SOTERIOLOGY AND PROPHETIC INSPIRATION
t h o u g h t s as w i t h its sons, but
(not j o i n ) a n y of the female sex,
(that is) w h a t b e l o n g s to sense." T h i s t i m e of cleansing is a time of war, P h i l o claims, " i n w h i c h o n e m u s t separate o n e ' s ranks a n d w a t c h out lest t h e y b e m i x e d u p a n d bring a b o u t defeat instead of v i c t o r y . " Philo c o n c l u d e s : But when just the right time has come for the cleansing and there is a drying up of all ignorance and of all that which is able to d o harm, then it is fitting and proper for it [the soul] to bring together those (elements) which have been divided and separated, not that the masculine thoughts may be made womanish, and relaxed b y softness, but that the female element, the senses, m a y be made manly b y following masculine thoughts and b y receiving from them seed for procreation, that it m a y perceive (things) with wisdom, prudence, justice and courage, in sum, with virtue. T h e r e c a n b e little d o u b t , then, a b o u t the meaning of b e c o m i n g m a l e in P h i l o ' s writings. This m o t i f is directly related t o P h i l o ' s practice of associating the sense-perceptible sphere w i t h w o m a n a n d the female, whereas the realm of the rational soul is m a l e a n d is s y m b o l i z e d b y the m a n . T o forsake the former sphere a n d turn t o the latter is t o b e c o m e male, a n d this is perfect p r o g r e s s . In
Chapter
II
it was c o n c l u d e d that
1
Philo understands
the
higher nature of m a n t o b e asexual, whereas m a n ' s l o w e r nature is i n v o l v e d in the male-female p o l a r i t y . T h e description of the m a n c r e a t e d after the i m a g e of G o d as OUT' appev OUTS OrjAu was thus seen to constitute a denial of his participation in the sphere of sexuality. W h e n Philo refers t o the sense-perceptible w o r l d as female a n d the realm of m i n d as male, h o w e v e r , it is clear that he is using the categories m a l e a n d female quite differently. A c c o r d i n g t o this second
1
usage,
female
refers
to
the material,
Cf. a l s o Q u a e s t . in G e n . I I : 1 2 , D e t .
On
the
whole
Philo's
statements
Pot.
about
Ins.
sense-perceptible
28.
becoming
male
and
his
more
g e n e r a l u s e of w h a t w e m i g h t call m a l e t e r m i n o l o g y w o u l d a p p e a r t o fit in p a r t i c u l a r l y well w i t h t h o s e p a s s a g e s in his w r i t i n g s w h e r e h e p o r t r a y s t h e ao
J
m i n d as a7r6aTC<xa|j.a Oetov, TCveijjj.a Octov, or dmauY "( -
a
T
[ ° u Xoyou Gelou], for in
t h e s e i n s t a n c e s t h e m i n d is u n a m b i g u o u s l y a s s o c i a t e d w i t h t h e d i v i n e ,
and
t h u s t o m o v e f r o m t h e s p h e r e of f e m a l e od'aGrjaii; t o t h a t of m a l e voo? w o u l d m o s t c l e a r l y refer t o t h e t r a n s i t i o n f r o m t h a t w h i c h is h u m a n t o t h a t is
divine.
An
actual
examination
of
Philo's
writings,
however,
which reveals
n o p o s i t i v e c o r r e l a t i o n b e t w e e n his use of m a l e t e r m i n o l o g y or t h e m o t i f of b e c o m i n g m a l e a n d t h o s e p a s s a g e s w h e r e h e d e s c r i b e s t h e m i n d as fX7t6cmao-u.a Geiov or TCveOu,a GELOV. I n d e e d , it is s o m e w h a t of a surprise t o d i s c o v e r o n t h e w h o l e , m a l e t e r m i n o l o g y is n o t i c e a b l y
absent from these
that,
passages.
BECOMING ONE realm,
w h i c h includes the
male-female
49 polarity,
whereas
male
refers t o that realm w h i c h is intrinsically asexual, i.e. the sphere of nous, the L o g o s , a n d u l t i m a t e l y G o d himself. It is in a c c o r d w i t h this s e c o n d usage that Philo is able t o describe G o d as m a l e in F u g . 51.
B . BECOMING ONE A s e c o n d w a y in w h i c h Philo describes the forsaking of the sphere of sense-perception, pleasure, a n d the b o d y , the r e a l m of the female, is in terms of changing f r o m d u a l i t y to unity. This is a m o v e m e n t w h i c h Philo d o e s n o t n a m e as such, b u t w h i c h w e m i g h t
aptly
refer to as " b e c o m i n g o n e . " W e h a v e already n o t e d P h i l o ' s emphasis 1
o n the oneness of G o d a n d the indivisibility of the rational s o u l . God
knows no mixture but
is in his isolation a u n i t y
(;j.6vac).
Similarly the rational soul is o n e . I n d e e d , in several passages, w e saw
that P h i l o describes the m i n d of m a n as a divine
fragment
(a7r6CT7raCTiu.a Osiov). " F o r n o part of that w h i c h is d i v i n e cuts itself off a n d b e c o m e s separate," itself."
2
he maintains,
" b u t does b u t
extend
W e also saw that the TipwToc avOpwTioc w a s originally o n e
(sic), b u t that he s u b s e q u e n t l y t u r n e d t o w a r d s the sense-perceptible w o r l d , thus i n v o l v i n g himself in d u a l i t y a n d division. It w a s the w o m a n w h o b e c a m e for h i m the b e g i n n i n g of the b l a m e w o r t h y l i f e . To
Philo it is clear that those w h o l o o k t o w a r d s the
3
created
w o r l d rather than t o w a r d s G o d the Creator find o n l y misery a n d travail.
4
T h e d i v i n e spirit does not d w e l l in those " w h o h a v e set
before t h e m m a n y ends (TSXY]) in l i f e " b u t o n l y in those w h o h a v e disengaged
themselves
created w o r l d .
from
the
multiplicity
of things
of
the
5
I n describing the translation of Moses, P h i l o writes that w h e n the time c a m e for h i m " t o m a k e his p i l g r i m a g e from earth to h e a v e n " a n d e x c h a n g e m o r t a l i t y for i m m o r t a l i t y , G o d " r e s o l v e d his t w o f o l d nature of soul a n d b o d y i n t o a single unity, transforming his w h o l e being into m i n d pure as s u n l i g h t . " 1
See
2
Det. Pot. Ins.
3
4
6
C h a p . I I , B , 1.
90.
O p . M u n d . 1 5 1 . See a b o v e , Deus
Imm.
14, S o m .
Chap. I I , C.
II170, O p . M u n d .
156, and
often.
53.
5
Gig.
6
V i t . M o s . 1 1 : 2 8 8 . I t is i m p o r t a n t t o n o t i c e t h a t P h i l o here d e s c r i b e s
l e v e l of b e i n g
t h a t is, w i t h i n his f r a m e w o r k of t h o u g h t ,
quite superior
a to
t h a t of t h e repcoToi; avGpccmot; of O p . M u n d . 1 3 6 ff. T h e o n e n e s s of t h e Ttpcoxot; A L G H J , III
4
SOTERIOLOGY AND PROPHETIC INSPIRATION
5o
I n Quaest. in E x . 11:29 d i v i n e inspiration.
P h i l o speaks of the p r o p h e t i c m i n d u n d e r
" I t b e c o m e s like the m o n a d , " he writes,
"not
b e i n g at all m i x e d w i t h a n y of t h o s e things associated w i t h d u a l i t y . " I n d e e d , the o n e " w h o is resolved i n t o the nature of u n i t y , " h a v i n g left b e h i n d all m o r t a l genera
(YEVRJ), "is c h a n g e d i n t o the divine,
so t h a t such m e n b e c o m e kin t o G o d a n d t r u l y d i v i n e . "
1
Likewise in Mut. N o m . 33-34 P h i l o maintains that those w h o h a v e disciplined the b o d y t o serve the soul "are resolved into a single form, that of soul, and b e c o m e u n b o d i e d m i n d s (sic, ev elSoc TO TT]C, 4>i>Xrjc, avocAoOevTec, XAL ao-COFXATOI Siavoiat, YEYOVOTEC,). W h e n
man's
m i n d is fully intent o n pleasing G o d , the influence of the b o d y is negated,
"the
earthly
element
is
destroyed
and
dissolved."
2
T h e reverse of this is seen in the transgression of A d a m : oi>x OPQCC, OTT. 6 yrjivoc, OYXOC,, 'ASajx, orav #if>Y]TAT, TOO StSiifxou £uAoo, Ovfjo-XEI., SuaSa TT,[X7jo"ac, rcpo jxovaSoc, XAL TO yevojxevov rcpo TOO TTETCOIYJXOTOC, £x6aufxa(TAC,; ( S o m . 11:70). P h i l o sees the n u m b e r seven as b e i n g m o s t closely related t o the m o n a d , the beginning of all t h i n g s .
3
It is t h u s interesting t o n o t e
s o m e of the epithets he applies t o this n u m b e r . Seven is "the virgin a m o n g the n u m b e r s , " " t h e essentially m o t h e r l e s s , "
4
"begotten b y
the father of the universe a l o n e , " " t h e ideal f o r m of the m a l e sex w i t h n o t h i n g of the f e m a l e , " " t h e manliest a n d b r a v e s t of the n u m b e r s , " " w e l l - g i f t e d b y nature for s o v e r e i g n t y a n d l e a d e r s h i p , "
dvOptoTToc c o n s i s t e d
"the
in a s t a t e of o r i g i n a l h a r m o n y in w h i c h t h e b o d y
was
c o m p l e t e l y s u b s e r v i e n t t o t h e s o v e r e i g n m i n d . B u t M o s e s w a s q u i t of
the
b o d y a l t o g e t h e r . H i s t w o f o l d n a t u r e of s o u l a n d b o d y w a s t r a n s f o r m e d i n t o t h e u n i t y of p u r e m i n d . H e w a s n o l o n g e r p a r t of t h e c r e a t e d m a t e r i a l w o r l d a t all. M o s e s ' final s t a t e t h u s c o r r e s p o n d s n o t t o t h e Ttptoxoi; avOptoTro^ b u t t o t h e avSpcoTTo? xax' eixova xou 9eou, i.e. t h e r a t i o n a l s o u l of m a n in its i s o l a t i o n and 1
p u r i t y . T h i s is 6 xax' aXrjOstav a v 9 p t G 7 r o £ ; . F e w passages
reflect
m o r e d r a m a t i c a l l y t h e gulf t h a t s e p a r a t e s
Philo
f r o m first c e n t u r y R a b b i n i c J u d a i s m . F o r t h e R a b b i s , t h e c a t e g o r i c a l q u a l i t a t i v e d i s t i n c t i o n b e t w e e n t h e t r a n s c e n d e n t G o d a n d finite m a n is c o n s t a n t l y p r e s u p p o s e d , a d i s t i n c t i o n n o t d e p e n d e n t o n t h e i n h e r e n t e v i l of t h e m a t e r i a l w o r l d , as is t h e c a s e in G n o s t i c i s m , b u t r a t h e r o n t h e d i f f e r e n c e
between
creature a n d creator. 2
Cf. S p e c . L e g . 1 1 1 : 1 7 9 , L e g . A l l . II: 50.
3
Dec.
102.
4
Dec.
102.
Cf. G .
Delling,
art.
Tra 6£voc, P
T.W.N.T.
V
(1954),
P-
8
*7-
D e l l i n g refers t o t h e c o n c e p t of t h e a s e x u a l origin of t h e v i r g i n A t h e n a , a n d a d d s " N u r ist sie nicht finden bei
ist
vaterlos,
bezeichnenderweise
der E n t s t e h u n g
wichtig,
sondern m u t t e r l o s (dem griechischen die A u s s c h a l t u n g nicht
die d e s
des
weiblichen
tnannlichen)."
Emp-
Elementes
BECOMING A VIRGIN opportune moment" perfection of m i n d . " At
(6 xoupoc),
1
"the
51
s y m b o l of k n o w l e d g e a n d
2
least s o m e of these epithets h a v e b e e n b o r r o w e d from
Pythagoreans,
3
yet
t h e y are
t h o r o u g h l y consistent
with
the
Philo's
o t h e r s t a t e m e n t s a b o u t the n u m b e r s o n e a n d seven. T h e y reflect a p a t t e r n strikingly similar t o w h a t w e h a v e already described in this section.
C. BECOMING A VIRGIN A third w a y in w h i c h P h i l o describes the forsaking of the c o r ruptible sphere of sense-perception a n d the b o d y , the realm of the female, is in terms of changing from a w o m a n i n t o a virgin. T h i s process m i g h t
well b e referred
Quaest. in E x . 1 1 : 3 ,
M
r
to
as
"becoming a virgin."
In
e x a m p l e , he explains that w h e n a m a n
c o m e s in c o n t a c t w i t h a virgin he c h a n g e s her i n t o a w o m a n . B u t in contrast
t o this, " w h e n souls b e c o m e d i v i n e l y inspired,
from
(being) w o m e n t h e y b e c o m e virgins, t h r o w i n g off the w o m a n l y c o r r u p t i o n s w h i c h are
(found) in sense-perception a n d
passion."
This t e x t , like those c o n s i d e r e d in the p r e c e d i n g t w o sections, deals w i t h the progress of the soul t o w a r d s G o d . Such progress it w a s seen c a n b e described in t e r m s of the female b e c o m i n g m a l e or in t e r m s of changing from d u a l i t y t o u n i t y . H e r e , h o w e v e r , it is said t h a t the w o m a n b e c o m e s a virgin. B u t this e x a c t l y confirms our p r e v i o u s interpretation, n a m e l y that maleness in those t e x t s referred n o t t o that w h i c h stands o p p o s i t e female in the m a l e - f e m a l e polarity, b u t rather t o a realm b e y o n d sexuality, for " v i r g i n " in this t e x t c o r r e s p o n d s t o " m a l e " in the others. This j u d g m e n t finds further c o n f i r m a t i o n f r o m Cher. 50: The union of human beings that is made for the procreation of children, turns virgins into women. But when God begins to consort with the soul, He makes what before was a woman into a virgin again, for he takes away the degenerate and emasculate passions which made it womanish (eOrjAuveTo) and plants instead the native growth of unpolluted virtues. Thus He [God] will not talk with Sarah till she has ceased from all that is after the manner of women (Gen. 1 8 : 1 1 ) , and is ranked once more as a pure virgin. 1
Spec. Leg. 1 1 : 5 6 .
2
S p e c . L e g . I I -.64.
3
See
references a n d
discussion b y
C o l s o n in
Philo
p. 609 ( n o t e o n V i t . M o s . I L 2 1 0 ) ; V I I ( 1 9 3 7 ) , PIL56).
S e e a l s o O p . M u n d . 100, L e g . A l l . L 1 5 .
D 2
4
(L.C.L.)
VI
(1935),
(note o n S p e c . L e g .
SOTERIOLOGY AND PROPHETIC INSPIRATION
52
In c o m m e n t i n g o n G e n . 1 8 : 1 1 ("Sarah was quit of her e x p e r i e n c e x
of w h a t b e l o n g s to w o m e n " ) in another place, Philo writes: " T h e passions are b y nature feminine, a n d w e m u s t practice the quitting of these for the masculine traits that m a r k the n o b l e a f f e c t i o n s " (Det.
P o t . Ins. 28).
In terms of c o n t e n t , this passage d i r e c t l y
parallels Cher. 50, e x c e p t that the expression " m a s c u l i n e traits" occurs instead of " p u r e v i r g i n . " It is clear t h a t in b o t h cases Philo is not speaking a b o u t actual m e n a n d w o m e n b u t rather a b o u t the material realm of the b o d y , pleasure, a n d sense-per c e p t i o n , o n the one hand, a n d the realm of the rational soul o n the other.
2
Further s u p p o r t for these conlusions is found in a n u m b e r of passages in Quaest. in Gen. W h e r e a s usually P h i l o associates m a n ' s reason with the m a l e a n d sense-perception with the female, in Quaest. in G e n . I V : 117 he uses R e b e k a h the virgin t o stand for the rational soul, a n d in I V : 242 he refers t o the " h e a v e n l y a n d e v e r virginal u n d e r s t a n d i n g . " In I V : 119 he n o t e s that Scripture " r e p o r t s a v e r y great difference b e t w e e n the m i n d of the virgin, w h i c h m a k e s use of n o t h i n g sense-perceptible, a n d the class or the t y p e w h i c h receives the s e n s e - p e r c e p t i b l e . " The
t e r m " v i r g i n " also appears significantly in P r a e m . P o e n .
158-60, where P h i l o c o m m e n t s o n the t e x t from Isaiah 5 4 : 1 : " F o r m o r e are the children of the desolate than the children of the o n e w h o has a h u s b a n d . " T h i s text, P h i l o states, is an allegory of the soul. For when the soul is " m a n y , " full that is of passions and vices with her children, pleasures, desires, folly, incontinence, injustice, gathered around her, she is feeble and sick and dangerously near to
1
D i d P h i l o b e l i e v e t h a t a w o m a n ' s s e x u a l desire o r s u i t a b i l i t y for s e x u a l
r e l a t i o n s c e a s e d w i t h t h e c o m p l e t i o n of t h e m e n o p a u s e ? I t is p o s s i b l e he did, although
his f r e q u e n t
u s e of G e n .
1 8 : 1 1 m o r e likely
p e c u l i a r d e m a n d s of his allegorical m e t h o d t h a n his ical 2
Som.
understanding
of
that
reflects
the
psychological-physiolog
woman.
T e r m s s u c h as a p a x o i ; , <xnoLk6q, veo;, av9oi;, a n d YjfSav ( R e r . D i v .
Her.
1 : 1 9 9 ) , w h i c h o c c u r in c o n n e c t i o n w i t h t h e d i v i n e i m p r e g n a t i o n
38,
motif,
b o t h s t r e n g t h e n a n d a m p l i f y t h e i n t e r p r e t a t i o n h e r e p r e s e n t e d of b e c o m i n g a v i r g i n . T h e s o u l t h a t is r e a d y t o r e c e i v e t h e d i v i n e s e e d is p u r e a n d c h a s t e , in t h e v e r y p r i m e a n d v i g o r of y o u t h , y o u n g a n d t e n d e r a n d fresh. T h e s e are all t e r m s t h a t c o u l d b e u s e d in c o n j u n c t i o n w i t h TtapOevo?, a n d ,
significantly,
P h i l o uses t h e e x p r e s s i o n ^ux^) paOeia, euyeio?, TtapOevo? in S o m . 1 : 2 0 0 as a d i r e c t parallel t o al £xi veai x a l arraXal ^uxal a p x i rjpcoaai x a l a v 9 e i xco tyj? axu.9)i; 6)pai'C6u.Evat ( S o m . 1 : 1 9 9 ) .
BECOMING A VIRGIN
53
death. But when she has become barren and ceases to produce these children or indeed has cast them out bodily she is transformed into a pure virgin. It is in this state of the pure virgin that the soul receives the d i v i n e seed from G o d a n d thus brings forth n e w life in the form of w i s d o m , c o u r a g e , t e m p e r a n c e , justice, a n d the o t h e r v i r t u e s . It w o u l d appear that the term xh?^
c
a
n
1
b e used b y P h i l o in
a p p r o x i m a t e l y the same w a y as 7rap8evoc. T h u s T a m a r , w h o is m e n t i o n e d in a n u m b e r of passages as the recipient of the d i v i n e seed (Mut. N o m . 134, D e u s I m m . 136-37), is described as a w i d o w after the fashion of the w i d o w of Z e r e p h a t h (I K i n g s 17:8-24), i.e. n o t just as o n e w h o has lost her h u s b a n d , " b u t because she is w i d o w ed of the passions w h i c h c o r r u p t a n d maltreat the m i n d " ( D e u s I m m . 136). It is as o n e w h o has "left forever the intercourse a n d society of mortals, a n d remained desolate and w i d o w e d of h u m a n pleasures" that she is fit t o receive the 0eia yovv) and b e filled with the o-TcepLtaTa TTJC apeTTJc. B u t , as has b e e n seen, the o n e w h o receives the d i v i n e seed usually is described as a virgin, and the t e r m " v i r g i n " is defined v e r y m u c h after the fashion of the t e r m " w i d o w " in this t e x t . T h i s functional i d e n t i t y of the t w o terms, i.e. as t h e y o c c u r in certain individual texts, is further substantiated b y Quaest. in E x . 1 1 : 3 . In this passage, as was n o t e d a b o v e , P h i l o asserts that when souls b e c o m e d i v i n e l y inspired t h e y c h a n g e from w o m e n i n t o virgins. B u t d i r e c t l y following this he w r i t e s : " M o r e o v e r , they follow
after
a n d pursue the genuine a n d u n m a t e d virgin, the
veritable W i s d o m
of G o d . " P h i l o adds that
such m i n d s —the
Greek fragment has " s o u l s " — " r i g h t l y . . . b e c o m e w i d o w s a n d are o r p h a n e d of m o r t a l things a n d acquire for themselves a n d h a v e as h u s b a n d the right l a w of nature, w i t h w h i c h t h e y l i v e . " W e thus h a v e the parallel: souls b e c o m e v i r g i n s — m i n d s (souls) widows. 1
become
2
T h e s e p a s s a g e s c o n f i r m t h e c o n c l u s i o n r e a c h e d in C h a p . I I , B t h a t
the
m a n after t h e i m a g e of G o d , w h o is t o b e e q u a t e d w i t h t h e r a t i o n a l s o u l of m a n , is b a s i c a l l y a s e x u a l . I n r e t u r n i n g t o G o d m a n l e a v e s b e h i n d t h e m a t e r i a l w o r l d of c h a n g e a n d c o r r u p t i o n , t h e s p h e r e of t h e f e m a l e , a n d the
rightful
ruler
of
A l t h o u g h associated
his
compound
namely
w i t h m a l e n e s s in m a n y p a s s a g e s ,
d o e s n o t p a r t i c i p a t e in s e x u a l i t y .
the
acknowledges
sovereign
the sovereign
mind. mind
T o b e c o m e m a l e or t o b e c o m e a v i r g i n is
t o m o v e b e y o n d t h e s p h e r e of s e x u a l 2
being,
polarity.
See a l s o S o m . 1 1 : 2 7 3 , D e u s I m m . 1 3 8 . I n S p e c . L e g . 1 : 1 2 9 P h i l o
refers
t o t h e childless w i d o w as b e i n g in a c e r t a i n s e n s e " v i r t u a l l y a v i r g i n " (TPOTTOM yap xiva x a l vuv
ECTTI
Suvdu.ei. TtapOevo?). B u t cf. S p e c . L e g . 1 : 1 0 5 - 1 0 7 ,
where,
SOTERIOLOGY AND PROPHETIC INSPIRATION
54
D . A COMPARISON OF THE CONTEXTS IN WHICH THE MOTIFS OF BECOMING MALE, BECOMING ONE, AND BECOMING A VIRGIN OCCUR T h e s e m o t i f s , b e c o m i n g male, b e c o m i n g o n e , a n d b e c o m i n g a virgin, all o c c u r in c o n j u n c t i o n w i t h the t h e m e of m a n ' s m o r a l a n d spiritual
development.
Y e t they
T h e r e are several i m p o r t a n t
are
not
used
indiscriminately.
differences in the w a y t h e y are used
a n d in the c o n t e x t s in w h i c h t h e y appear. F o r e x a m p l e , n o t o n l y in t h o s e passages w h e r e P h i l o speaks a b o u t b e c o m i n g male, b u t also w h e r e v e r he emphasizes the male qualities of the m i n d , the f o c u s of a t t e n t i o n is n o t u p o n G o d ' s a c t i v i t y a n d gifts of g r a c e b u t u p o n m a n ' s o w n effort. M a n is t o forsake c o r r u p t w a y s of the female a n d discipline himself in the
the
struggle
t o live v i r t u o u s l y . "Ao-xvjo-ic is a k e y w o r d in these t e x t s , w h i c h m o s t l y refer t o the m a n w h o is m a k i n g progress (6 TcpoxoTCTWv) in t h e g o o d life. I n this struggle p a s s i v i t y is seen as a v i c e a n d is identified w i t h female sense-perception. T h e i n d i v i d u a l is t o flee f r o m w e a k , c o w a r d l y , effeminate sense-perception a n d is t o e m phasize the p o w e r s of the a c t i v e , d o m i n a n t , m a l e m i n d . H e is n o t t o wait p a s s i v e l y for G o d ' s help b u t is rather t o enter i n t o
the
struggle w i t h all of the e n e r g y a n d discipline he c a n muster. G o d ' s g r a c e is n o t e x c l u d e d in these passages, b u t the m a i n e m p h a s i s is n o t o n the c o n t r a s t b e t w e e n G o d a n d m a n b u t rather o n the c o n trast b e t w e e n the earthly part of m a n ' s b e i n g a n d the
heavenly
f o l l o w i n g L e v . 2 1 : 1 0 - 1 5 , P h i l o s e t s t h e w i d o w , t h e o n e d i v o r c e d , etc., o v e r a g a i n s t t h e v i r g i n . L i k e w i s e , s u c h p a s s a g e s as D e t . P o t . I n s . 1 4 7 - 4 9 ; E b r . 5 ; S p e c . L e g . 1 1 : 3 0 - 3 1 ; P o s t . C . 6, 6 8 ; M u t . N o m . 1 4 9 m a k e i t clear t h a t t h e p a r a l l e l v i r g i n - w i d o w is n o t r e l e v a n t w i t h r e s p e c t t o m o s t of t h e o c c u r r e n c e s Y
of
a
r
e
X )P ' X ) P ^
e t v
i
n
Philo. T
a<
P h i l o c a n also m a k e u s e of t h e t e r m Y JP ? in T
u s e of x i P
a
j
u s
a
fashion analogous to the
t c o n s i d e r e d . See, for e x a m p l e , M i g r . A b r . 1 4 1 : S a r a h b o r e a
s o n in h e r o l d a g e ( G e n . 2 1 : 7 ) , " a t a t i m e , t h a t is, w h e n all t h i n g s t h a t are m o r t a l a n d o b j e c t s of s e n s e - p e r c e p t i o n h a v e d e c a y e d , w h i l e t h i n g s i m m o r t a l and with
intellectually the
waning
discerned h a v e grown y o u n g again." T h u s , of
passion
and
involvement
in
the
concomitant
sense-perceptible,
m a t e r i a l w o r l d t h a t o l d a g e b r i n g s , t h e r e is, a c c o r d i n g t o P h i l o , t h e r e t u r n to a state
analogous t o t h a t which he elsewhere
describes
b y the
terms
" v i r g i n " a n d " w i d o w . " B u t , as is f r e q u e n t l y t h e c a s e in his w r i t i n g s , i t is difficult t o d e c i d e w h e t h e r P h i l o i n t e n d s s u c h a s t a t e m e n t as t h i s in M i g r . Abr.
1 4 1 as a n a c t u a l d e s c r i p t i o n of o l d a g e , or w h e t h e r t h e e x p r e s s i o n " o l d
age"
f u n c t i o n s s i m p l y as t h e o c c a s i o n for his a l l e g o r i z i n g in a m o r e or less
a r b i t r a r y f a s h i o n . P r o b a b l y , in t h i s c a s e , t h e t r u t h lies s o m e w h e r e these
two
alternatives.
between
THE DIVINE IMPREGNATION OF THE SOUL
55
p a r t . Spiritual progress consists in forsaking the o n e a n d e m p h a s i z ing the o t h e r .
1
I n t h o s e passages w h e r e P h i l o speaks of b e c o m i n g o n e , h o w e v e r , a n d e v e n m o r e clearly w h e r e he refers t o b e c o m i n g a virgin, the emphasis is u p o n G o d ' s a c t i v i t y a n d n o t m a n ' s effort. M a n is t o cease f r o m striving a n d rest f r o m his l a b o r s in the k n o w l e d g e that u l t i m a t e l y all true virtue is a gift of G o d ' s grace. O n l y the o n e w h o realizes the c o m p l e t e inability of m a n t o a c h i e v e virtue o n his own
will be g r a n t e d t o share in that greatest
vision of G o d .
g o o d of m a n ,
the
2
E . THE DIVINE IMPREGNATION OF THE SOUL The
passages in w h i c h P h i l o refers t o b e c o m i n g a virgin
further
distinct
in that
they
occur
within
the
very
are
particular
c o n t e x t of the d i v i n e i m p r e g n a t i o n of the soul, a m o t i f that falls within the larger f r a m e w o r k of d i v i n e inspiration
a n d is closely
3
related t o the t h e m e of p r o p h e t i c e c s t a s y . In this c o n t e x t it is G o d or an agent of G o d such as S o p h i a or the L o g o s that p l a y s the a c t i v e , d o m i n a n t , male role, a n d m a n w h o is r e c e p t i v e a n d passive, i.e. female. In these passages the w h o l e of m a n ' s being, i n c l u d i n g the rational soul, is set in sharp contrast w i t h the indescribable p o w e r a n d g l o r y of G o d . I n
R e r . D i v . Her. 22-39,
ror
example, Philo
describes w i t h great p a t h o s m a n ' s sense of utter insignificance a n d worthlessness as he c o m e s near t o G o d . A s he l o o k s t o G o d , m a n
1
A l t h o u g h P h i l o ' s use of m a l e t e r m i n o l o g y t o d e s c r i b e t h e m i n d u s u a l l y
is f o u n d w i t h i n t h i s c o n t e x t of m a n ' s o w n e f f o r t in t h e m o r a l a n d s p i r i t u a l life, t h i s l a t t e r m o t i f f r e q u e n t l y o c c u r s w h e n n o m a l e t e r m i n o l o g y is p r e s e n t . Cf.
Q u a e s t . in E x . 1 1 : 5 1 , Q u a e s t . in G e n . I V : 4 9 . S e e also S o m . 1 1 : 1 7 6 - 7 7 ,
Abr.
1 1 6 . Cf. G o o d e n o u g h , Light,
Fortschritt,
p . 1 4 0 ; W o l f s o n , Philo,
I, 5 3 - 5 5 ; V o l k e r ,
p. 1 1 5 .
2
Q u a e s t . I n E x . 1 1 : 5 1 . Cf. O p . M u n d . 7 1 . S e e Jervell, p . 6 1 .
3
I n m o s t c a s e s P h i l o a r g u e s for t h e v i r g i n i t y of t h e s o u l as a p r e r e q u i s i t e
for t h e d i v i n e i m p r e g n a t i o n , b u t in a t l e a s t t w o p a s s a g e s ( C h e r . 50, Q u a e s t . in E x . 1 1 : 3 ; cf. P r a e m . P o e n . 1 5 8 - 1 6 0 ) t h e s o u l a p p a r e n t l y b e c o m e s a v i r g i n in t h e p r o c e s s of r e c e i v i n g t h e d i v i n e i m p r e g n a t i o n . S u c h v a r i a t i o n s p r o b a b l y i n d i c a t e t h a t P h i l o is n o t m o v i n g w i t h i n t h e c o n f i n e s of a f i x e d f r a m e w o r k , w h e t h e r p h i l o s o p h i c a l , t h e o l o g i c a l , m y t h o l o g i c a l , or c u l t i c . H e is a p p a r e n t l y u n c o n c e r n e d w i t h w h a t a t t i m e s m a y a p p e a r t o us as i n c o n s i s t e n t v a r i a t i o n s in d e t a i l . H e is n o t p r e s c r i b i n g a p a t t e r n t h a t m u s t b e r i g i d l y a d h e r e d t o b y all if t h e y are t o f i n d G o d , b u t is r a t h e r d e s c r i b i n g b y m e a n s of v a r i o u s m e t a p h o r s a n d a l l e g o r i e s w h a t it m e a n s w h e n t h e s o u l f o r s a k e s itself
and
e x p e r i e n c e s t h e m y s t e r i o u s a n d u n e x p l a i n a b l e g r a c e of G o d (cf. M i g r . A b r .
31-33)-
SOTERIOLOGY AND PROPHETIC INSPIRATION
56
is " h u m b l e d , cast d o w n to the c l a y , r e d u c e d t o such an elemental state, as seems n o t e v e n to e x i s t . " J u s t as A b r a h a m declared himself t o b e earth and ashes w h e n he b e g a n t o speak t o the L o r d (Gen. 18:27), so it is precisely w h e n he b e c o m e s aware of his o w n n o t h i n g ness (OU8EVSI«) that the creature is able t o c o m e i n t o the presence of his M a k e r .
1
T h e soul that yearns after the things of G o d , writes Philo, n o t o n l y s h o u l d leave the b o d y , the senses, and speech, b u t also s h o u l d b e c o m e a fugitive from itself. from itself.
3
2
T h e m i n d is to quit itself, t o d e p a r t
" E c s t a s y . . . is n o t h i n g else t h a n the departing
g o i n g o u t of the u n d e r s t a n d i n g , " 111:9.
" F o r w h e n the
and
Philo asserts in Quaest. in G e n .
m i n d is d i v i n e l y possessed and b e c o m e s
filled with G o d , it is n o longer within itself, for it receives the d i v i n e spirit to dwell within it."
4
Philo's clearest s t a t e m e n t of the relationship b e t w e e n the m i n d a n d the divine spirit in the c o n t e x t of ecstasy a n d divine possession is f o u n d in R e r . D i v . Her. 264-65: So while the radiance of the mind is still all around us, when it pours as it were a noonday beam into the whole soul, we are selfcontained, not possessed. But when it comes to its setting, naturally ecstasy and divine possession and madness fall upon us. For when the light of God shines, the human light sets; when the divine light sets, the human dawns and rises. This is what regularly befalls the fellowship of the prophets. The mind is evicted at the arrival of the divine Spirit, but when that departs the mind returns to its tenancy. Mortal and immortal m a y not share the same home. A n d therefore the setting of reason and the darkness which surrounds it produce ecstasy and inspired frenzy. S u c h a passage as this, where the m i n d is described as m o r t a l , a n d as surrounded b y darkness, a n d is set in sharpest contrast w i t h the divine reality, reflects an understanding of VOUC. that c a n n o t easily be r e c o n c i l e d w i t h P h i l o ' s description of VOUC as «Tr6ffTcaff(i.a 0EIOV or TivEufxa 6EIOV. H e r e P h i l o argues that m a n c o m e s t o k n o w G o d n o t b y e m p h a s i z i n g that part of himself w h i c h is G o d - l i k e b u t 1
This emphasis on man's nothingness occurs with considerable frequency
in c o n j u n c t i o n w i t h t h e t h e m e of d i v i n e i n s p i r a t i o n . Cf. e s p e c i a l l y M i g r . A b r . 1 3 4 - 4 2 , 3 4 - 3 5 , t h e l a t t e r b e i n g o n e of t h e f e w p a s s a g e s w h e r e P h i l o c a l l y refers t o his o w n religious 2
Rer. Div. Her.
3
Rer. Div. Her.
4
specifi
experience.
69. 74.
See a l s o L e g . A l l . 1 : 8 2 ; I I I : 2 g , 4 1 , 4 3 ; S o m . 1 1 : 2 3 2 ; S p e c . L e g . I V : 49.
THE DIVINE IMPREGNATION OF THE SOUL
57
rather b y turning a w a y from himself, i n c l u d i n g the m i n d . " H e w h o has sincerely believed in G o d has learned t o disbelieve in all else, all that is c r e a t e d o n l y t o perish," i n c l u d i n g reasoning as well as sense1
p e r c e p t i o n . It is w h e n m a n k n o w s himself best that he m o s t despairs of himself. " A n d the m a n that has despaired of himself is b e g i n n i n g t o k n o w h i m that i s . "
2
It is m a n ' s high regard for himself, his self-
c o n c e i t (o?7)ffi<;), t h a t is " t h e w o r s t evil of the s o u l " and that w h i c h 3
keeps h i m from k n o w i n g the O n e w h o is (Cher. 57 f f . ) . T h e k n o w l edge
of G o d is n e v e r in a n y sense a m e r e l y h u m a n possibility.
" T h e seekers for truth are those w h o envisage G o d t h r o u g h G o d , light t h r o u g h l i g h t " ( P r a e m . P o e n . 46). " T o G o d alone is it p e r m i t t e d t o a p p r e h e n d G o d " (Praem. P o e n . 40; see 28-46). It is in this awareness of his utter nothingness and the futility of all his o w n striving that m a n is able t o receive G o d ' s gifts of grace, 4
especially the d i v i n e seeds of v i r t u e . W i t h i n the f r a m e w o r k of the intercourse of G o d w i t h the soul, G o d (or, in m a n y cases such 5
agents of G o d as S o p h i a or A r e t e ) takes the d o m i n a n t , a c t i v e , m a l e role. H e sows the seed, i m p r e g n a t e s the soul. Man c o r r e s p o n d ingly, receives the seed, thus taking the passive part of the f e m a l e . 1
P r a e m . P o e n . 28.
2
S o m . 1:6o.
3
Jervell, pp.
52-70,
a n a l y s e s t h e u s e of t h e t e r m
6
in P h i l o ' s w r i t i n g s
EIXCOV
and reaches conclusions similar t o the a b o v e regarding Philo's dual
attitude
t o w a r d s vou?. T h u s , o n t h e o n e h a n d , " E i k o n ist als A b b i l d eine a b g e s c h w a c h te,
gleichnisartige
kiindet
Darstellung
und vermittelt
die
der
'ewige
Urwirklichkeit.
Wahrheit,' ohne
Die sie
'eixcov
z u sein.
TOU 0eou' Eikon
ist
i m m e r — i m G e g e n s a t z zu der gnostischen V o r s t e l l u n g v o m 'Bilde' — 'nur' B i l d , sie t r a g t in sich d a s M o m e n t d e s U n g e f a . h r " (p. 5 6 ) . B u t P h i l o ' s w r i t i n g s , according
to
Jervell,
reflect
"noch
ein
anderes
das v o n gnostichen und mysterien-religiosen
Verstandnis
des
d a s B i l d n i c h t m e h r u n z u l a n g l i c h e s A b b i l d s o n d e r n ein A u s f l u s s d e s [j.a, d a s d i e v o i l e W i r k l i c h k e i t s u b s t a n z a r t i g in sich t r a g t " nur
ist d e r L o g o s als E i k o n g o t t l i c h , " P h i l o c o n c l u d e s ,
innere
Gottebenbildlichkeit
des
Menschen
'Bildes,'
G e d a n k e n g e p r a g t ist. H i e r ist
ist
aus
7rapdSetY-
(p. 5 6 ) .
"Nicht
"sondern a u d i
gottlicher
die
Substanz,
s e l b s t ein T e i l d e s h i m m l i s c h e n S e i n s " (p. 60). 4
Cf.
5
I n t e r m s of t h e p u r p o s e s of this s t u d y it w o u l d n o t a p p e a r t o b e n e c e s s a r y
Migr.
to m a k e
a sharp distinction
impregnates equivalent plays
A b r . 3 1 ff. between
the soul a n d those
in m o s t
of t h e s e
where
texts)
those
instances
where
Sophia or A r e t e
or t h e L o g o s , a c t i n g
God
himself
( w h i c h are as G o d ' s
t h e m a l e role. I n b o t h c a s e s t h e u n d e r l y i n g e m p h a s i s
is t h e
really agents, same,
n a m e l y t h a t all g o o d n e s s a n d v i r t u e is t h e gift of G o d ' s g r a c e . 6
it
Cf. A b r . 102, w h e r e P h i l o m a i n t a i n s t h a t V i r t u e r e a l l y is m a l e , causes
movement
and
suggests
w o r d s . " T h e p a s s a g e c o n t i n u e s : 0rjXu
noble
conceptions
8k 6 Xoyin\xb(;
of
noble
XIVOUJAEVO?
"since
deeds
and
x a l 7Toa8eu6|ji£voc;
x a l cocpeXoujAEVoc; x a l auvoXco? ev T U 7tdaxEiv i%ziOC^OJAEVOC;, x a l T O naQot; auxto
SOTERIOLOGY AND PROPHETIC INSPIRATION
58
A s c a n b e seen from the following chart, Philo describes the intercourse of G o d w i t h the soul in a bewildering v a r i e t y of d e t a i l . Text C h e r . 44
Female
Male 6 TOJV OVXCOV
Seed
apexal
xa xaXa
apexYj
xa 6eia
1
Offspring
7nx-uv)p, 6 aY£VY]TO(; §zoq C h e r . 46
xo atxiov (i.e.
C h e r . 47
aTtepfxaxa
Oso?)
ouSev 6v7)xov
2£7T9Cdpa (r) 7rxy)VY) x a l [AsxapCTioc dpexYj)
C h e r . 49
ao
euSaifxovia
aXrjGetav TrapGlvo?)
al au6iy^£t?
C h e r . 50
xal axYjpaxoi dpexai xouxo fxovav eaxl awxrjpiov. P h i l o , h o w e v e r , d o e s n o t g l o r i f y p a s s i v i t y as s u c h , but
o n l y in m a n ' s r e l a t i o n s h i p t o G o d , a n d , specifically, as h e r e , in t h e c o n
t e x t of t h e d i v i n e i m p r e g n a t i o n of t h e soul. I n t e r m s of m a n ' s o w n p a s s i v i t y is u s u a l l y a s s o c i a t e d w i t h s e n s e - p e r c e p t i o n ,
self,
the weak and female
e l e m e n t of t h e s o u l , a n d is c o n t r a s t e d w i t h t h e a c t i v i t y of t h e m i n d , t h e s t r o n g m a l e p a r t of t h e soul (cf. S p e c . L e g . 1 : 2 0 0 - 2 0 1 , L e g . A l l . 1 1 : 3 8 , al.).
I n r e l a t i o n s h i p t o t h e soul as a w h o l e t h e m i n d is t o b e a c t i v e
et
and
s o v e r e i g n , j u s t t h e o p p o s i t e of p a s s i v e . P a r t i c u l a r l y a b h o r r e n t t o P h i l o w a s t h e p a s s i v e e f f e m i n a t e a t t i t u d e of t h e m a l e h o m o s e x u a l . A s l a v e t o i r r a t i o n a l passion a n d infected b y the "female disease," he was a blatant contradiction of m a n as h e s h o u l d b e , i.e. m a n g u i d e d b y t h e s o v e r e i g n , a c t i v e , m a s c u l i n e m i n d (cf. S p e c . L e g . 1 : 3 2 5 , 1 1 1 : 3 7 - 4 2 ; S o m . I : i z 6 ; V i t . C o n t . 60; R e r . D i v . Her.
2 7 4 ) . T h u s , in s p i t e of t h e f a c t t h a t t h e s o u l or m i n d of m a n m u s t b e c o m e
f e m a l e - p a s s i v e in r e l a t i o n s h i p t o G o d , for a m a n t o b e c o m e e f f e m i n a t e or w o m a n i s h in his r e l a t i o n s h i p s w i t h i n s o c i e t y ,
and particularly within
the
s e x u a l s p h e r e , is t o t a l l y r e j e c t e d . 1
T h e c h a r t is d e s i g n e d t o p r o v i d e a q u i c k s u m m a r y of t h e m o s t i m p o r t a n t
texts.
I t c l e a r l y illustrates t h e f a c t t h a t t h e d i v i n e i m p r e g n a t i o n m o t i f
is
b o t h f r e q u e n t a n d rich in v a r i a t i o n s in P h i l o ' s w r i t i n g s , b u t it p r o v i d e s t h e r e a d e r w i t h f e w clues as t o t h e c o n t e x t s in w h i c h t h e v a r i o u s t e r m s a p p e a r , and
t h u s m a y well o b s c u r e t h e f a c t t h a t t h e s e are b y no m e a n s h o m o g e n e o u s .
Nor
d o e s t h e c h a r t r e a l l y i n d i c a t e h o w t h e m o t i f f u n c t i o n s in a n y g i v e n c a s e .
W h a t it d e s i g n a t e s " m a l e " or " f e m a l e " is u s u a l l y n o t e x p l i c i t l y so d e s i g n a t e d by In
P h i l o b u t is n e c e s s a r i l y
inferred f r o m t h e role o r f u n c t i o n
portrayed.
m a n y of t h e p a s s a g e s listed P h i l o s t a r t s w i t h a c e r t a i n g i v e n , n a m e l y a
B i b l i c a l t e x t t h a t m e n t i o n s p h y s i c a l i m p r e g n a t i o n or c o n c e p t i o n . T h u s ,
in
t h o s e cases w h e r e his o v e r a l l p u r p o s e is t o c l a r i f y t h e G o d - m a n r e l a t i o n s h i p , it is n o t s u r p r i s i n g t h a t h e m a k e s use of t h e t h e m e of d i v i n e i m p r e g n a t i o n or
G o d ' s i n t e r c o u r s e w i t h t h e soul. Y e t , in o t h e r i n s t a n c e s , P h i l o p r o b a b l y
c h o s e t o use t h e p a r t i c u l a r t e x t in q u e s t i o n imagery
m a d e it
so e a s i l y
a d a p t a b l e t o his
precisely purposes.
because the
sexual
THE DIVINE IMPREGNATION OF THE SOUL Text M i g r . A b r . 31
Male
Female
Seed
0e6<;
59
Offspring XaptTEi;, ai 7rap0evoi [0eoO] GuyaTEpei;
Migr. A b r . 6 civ, 7rap'
34-35
8v Ta<;
Siavoia
a7rep(xa dvco0ev
epfiTjveia, eupeait;,
TY)?
(pcoTOi;
a7r6>.auaii;, dvoiyvua0ai TE x o d
o^uSepxeaTdTT]
auyxXsieaGai
TCOV
o<\i\.q, s v d p y a a 7rpay(idTcov
dpiSyjXoxdTTi M i g r . A b r . 140
[8e6q]
IJJUXY) apexdiCTY)
V i t . C o n t . 68
aotpia
yyjpaiat roxpOevot
V i t . C o n t . 68
Beoc;, 6 7ra-rYjp
7) 0£O.y)(;
yevvTjfia dppev, (BXdaxy)(ia 0etov exyovoi dOdvaxoi at? SuvYjaeTai. 0ECdp£lV T(X
exyovoi d0dva-roi
CTocptai;86y(iaTa M u t . N o m . 132
0e
M u t . N o m . 134
0e6<;
©dfxap (dpeTYj)
M u t . N o m . 137
9e6c
ippovyjaii;
Y)
M u t . N o m . 138
T a xaXd TO yev/]T6v
Geo?
M u t . N o m . 142
apexYj
A b r . 100-101
XoyiCTfAOc;
PouXal dyaSal xai Xoyot a7rou8atof at iepo7rpe7TeT? Kai. Getat
ai 2TI veai xai
dopaTo; dTtopd
dya06v
O7T0pai Som. I: igg
-reXeioi
tppovYjaeco?
Aoyot
Soyfidxcov Som.
1:200
Som.
1:200
TeAeiai
sucpueti; i^iu/at
apeTat 01 aotptac; 6p6oi Aoyoi
euyetoi;,
TtdvTa daxeia, yeved appyjv
7rap0£vot; Deus Imm.
[6e6q]
©dfxap
136-37 dv0pco7uvcov yjSovcov x a l TOW 90eip6vTcov [xevcov mxGcov T/iv Siavotav)
a7rep(iaTa dpexyji; (0eta yov/j)
x a A a i Trpd^en;
60
SOTERIOLOGY AND PROPHETIC INSPIRATION Male
Text Praem.
Poen.
^uy_7) (ayvf)
[9E6Q]
159-60
Seed
Female GEIO?
airopo?
Offspring tppovyjai?, dvSpsta,
7tap6£Vo?)
a(09poauvT), Sixatoauvyj, X.T.X.
P o s t . C . 134-36 Geo?
7] £XTO? TOM 7ta0cov Acta
L e g . AIL I I I :
Ta cppovyjaEW? | arapLtaTa apsTat
GEO?
xaXal x a l d^tat Evvotat T<X xaXd
180-81 Leg. All. I l l :
ouSst? y s v ^ T o ?
180-81
(GEO?,
Leg. All. I l l :
6 xupto?
at ^u^ai
EijSat(j.ovta
•f) TsXsta 9 u a t ?
[God]
the soul
a p o r t i o n of
holy things
A c t a (xpzzri)
xaAai Trpd^Et?, dpETri
xupto?)
210 Q u a c s t . in
Gen. 1 1 1 : 5 4
the divine a n d incorruptible virtue
Q u a e s t . in Gen.
IV:
the
Father
[man]
99
the
unadulter
a t e d s e e d s of ] divinity (in corporeal a n d intelligible)
Fug.
109
Geo?, 6 Tcax-rjp
Mcouar]?, 6
aocpta
dp/tEpEiic, Xoyo? 0 £ t o ? Fug.
50
1
Geo?
a o 9 t a (0uyaTr;p GEOU)
Fug-
51-52
0091a
Spec. L e g .
6 T7)? tpuaeco?
11:29-31
6pG6? Xoyo?
<\>i>yrx.L
^dGrjd?,
(xaGyjat?,
rcatSEta,
rratSsta,
ETTlCJTTj U.Tj,
kmcni]y.7),
X.T.X.
X.T.X.
! 6 dpETCOV arcopo?
jJouXai dyixGai x a i 7rpd<;si? xaXal x a i a7tou8atat
Spec. L e g .
do-TEio? Xoyo?
IL29-31
6 K I T ' apeTriv
Det. Pot. Ins.
6 opOo? Xoyo?
Stivota
i svvotat aptCTat
<Jju r] x
149 Post. C. 171
Geo?
O U S E V dTsXE?,
dXX'
xatptat
x a l TEXEiat [artopat] Deus Imm. 5
[GEO?]
Xa(j.oor)X, 6
"Avva, T5)? T O U G E O U ScopTj^xa
ao9ta?
j Gsta yovr)
T£Tay(J.EVO? EV
T > } T O U GEOU
Tdt^Et TpQ7TO?' T£Tay|J.£VO? 0£U Leg. All. I l l ;
150
6 Gyt?)? x a i y)ye(xct)V Xoyo?,
i 1
9p6vy]ot?, Sixaioauv?),
THE DIVINE IMPREGNATION OF THE SOUL Male
Text
Female
Seed
Offspring
6 anzpy.ot.Tiy.6i; xai yevvrjTixo!; T £ > V xaXwv X O Y O ? op96? Leg.
All. I l l :
6l
aujiTrdaY) dpSTY]
1
BEO?
40
TYjXauYY) x a i Xa(j.7tpd x a i Si'
Leg.
All.
Rer.
Div.
1:79
1 oXcov vospa cpp6vY,ai<;, dpETY]
9E6? 6 7taTT)p
Her.
62
Ttdvxoiv, 6
Det.
Pot. Ins.
9E6?
Pot.
6 Y£vvY)oai; TOV XOaLlOV
OEO?
|
d|J.Y)Tcop d p y YJ dpETY)
I T a aitEppLaTa E5 oupavou
60 Det. Ins. Leg.
54 All. I I :
49 Cher. 49 Ebr.
30
6 7taTT)p TCOV
Det.
Pot.
147
ootpta dpETT),
aocpia
T a 6Xa, T a au(j.7ravTa
9EO?
aocpia, a p E T / j
Sr)u.ioupYd(;,
Y] TOU TTEJTOIYJKOTO? £7ttOTTJU.r)
9E6
?
'laadx 6 x6au.o?, T O icdv
i
1
oXcov 6 S 6 ?
6 naTYJp
Ins.
1 Sdppa, YI d p S T Y ] , Y)
1
j 6 Y'lYEvy)?
Ta TO'J 0EOU a7tEp(xaTa
T<X a u p i T t a V T a 6 (iovoc; x a i dYa7TY]T0? aia0Y)Toi; uio?, 6 xoauo^
Ta oXa
anopa x a i
i a 6Xa
YEVECTl? droxVTCov
In all of these texts, G o d is shown to be the source of all g o o d n e s s and
virtue. Man is as nothing before G o d . T h e attitude of soul 1
required of m a n is one of humility, receptivity, p a s s i v i t y . T h e male-female t e r m i n o l o g y , with G o d as male a n d the h u m a n soul as female, appears to b e particularly apt for expressing this k i n d of relationship between G o d a n d m a n .
2
1
Cf. CJuaest. in E x . I I .3. H e r e P h i l o in effect a r g u e s t h a t it is s o u l s w h o are filled w i t h s e l f - l o v e t h a t a t t r i b u t e a n a c t i v e , initiating, m a s c u l i n e role to t h e m i n d . T h o s e souls, h o w e v e r , t h a t are free of s e l f - l o v e are willing t o p l a y a p a s s i v e , r e c e p t i v e , f e m i n i n e role in r e l a t i o n s h i p t o G o d , w h o is " f a t h e r " and "husband." 2
M a n y of t h e d e t a i l s of t h e v a r i o u s p a s s a g e s t h a t d e a l w i t h d i v i n e i m p r e g n a t i o n c a n s a f e l y b e o m i t t e d in t e r m s of t h e p u r p o s e s of t h i s s t u d y . P h i l o p a r t i c u l a r l y c a p i t a l i z e s o n t h e stories f r o m G e n e s i s t h a t tell of t h e b i r t h of children t o t h e P a t r i a r c h s a n d their w i v e s . T h u s G o d " o p e n e d t h e w o m b " of L e a h a n d i m p l a n t e d w i t h i n h e r t h e seed of w i s d o m (Cher. 46, P o s t . C . 1 3 5 , Leg. A l l . I I I : i 8 o ) . S i m i l a r l y in t h e c a s e of S a r a h (Cher. 45, 5 0 ; M u t . N o m . 138; L e g . A l l . 1 1 1 : 2 1 7 - 1 9 ) , a n d also w i t h Z i p p o r a h , w h o m M o s e s f o u n d " p r e g n a n t t h r o u g h n o m o r t a l a g e n c y " ( C h e r . 4 7 ) , it is G o d w h o s o w s t h e
6z
SOTERIOLOGY AND PROPHETIC INSPIRATION It is m o s t likely this a c t i v e - p a s s i v e p o l a r i t y a n d n o t the influence
of s o m e m y t h o l o g i c a l a n d r o g y n o u s figure that is chiefly responsible for the alternation b e t w e e n m a l e a n d female that w e find in S o p h i a 1
a n d A r e t e . S o p h i a a n d Arete" are never p o r t r a y e d as b i s e x u a l , i.e. b o t h m a l e a n d female at the s a m e t i m e . T h e y are represented as female-passive in relationship t o G o d a n d m a l e - a c t i v e in relation ship t o m a n . S o p h i a a n d A r e t e e x h i b i t the deeds a n d p o w e r s of truly perfect m e n (ivSpwv TsXeioriTcov), b u t b e c a u s e t h e y o c c u p y a s e c o n d place in relationship to G o d t h e y h a v e feminine n a m e s . " L e t us, t h e n , " P h i l o concludes, " p a y i n g n o h e e d t o the d i s c r e p a n c y in the gender of the w o r d s , say t h a t the daughter of G o d , e v e n W i s d o m , is n o t o n l y masculine b u t father, s o w i n g a n d b e g e t t i n g in souls aptness to learn, discipline, k n o w l e d g e , s o u n d sense, g o o d a n d laudable actions"
(Fug. 51-52). T h e maleness or femaleness of
Sophia a n d A r e t e is n o t t o be u n d e r s t o o d in terms of actual s e x u a l i t y at all b u t rather in terms of the m o r e or less a d h o c d e m a n d s of each i n d i v i d u a l passage. L i k e G o d , the L o g o s , a n d the rational soul of m a n , S o p h i a a n d A r e t e are asexual. T h e real
issue in
these
d i v i n e seed. P h i l o d o e s n o t c o n f i n e his e x a m p l e s t o t h e w i v e s of t h e P a t r i a r c h s b u t a l s o refers t o s u c h figures as T a m a r ( M u t . N o m . 1 3 4 , D e u s I m m . 1 3 6 - 3 7 ) a n d H a n n a h , t h e m o t h e r of S a m u e l ( D e u s I m m . 5 ) . In
Cher.
4 4 - 4 6 P h i l o is c a r e f u l t o p o i n t o u t t h a t
a l t h o u g h G o d is
h u s b a n d of S a r a h a n d of L e a h , for h e o p e n e d t h e i r w o m b s , n o n e t h e l e s s
the they
bring forth n o t t o G o d b u t t o A b r a h a m , " w h o seeks t o win w i s d o m , " a n d t o J a c o b , " w h o e n d u r e s toil t o gain t h e g o o d . " G o d " b e g e t s n o t h i n g for himself, for h e is in w a n t of n o t h i n g "
( C h e r . 44, 46. O n t h e c o m p l e t e n e s s of G o d ,
see D r u m m o n d , I I , 4 9 - 5 0 ) . P h i l o is n o t i n t e r e s t e d in t h e a c t u a l h i s t o r i c a l l i v e s of t h e P a t r i a r c h s as reflected in t h e s e argued that
p a s s a g e s , a n d , as far as I k n o w , n o r e c e n t s c h o l a r
Philo really believed
J. G r e s h a m M a c h e n , The
Virgin
in a v i r g i n b i r t h of t h e P a t r i a r c h s Birth
of Christ
[1930],
p.
303).
His
has (cf. sole
c o n c e r n is t o i n d i c a t e t h e origin of v i r t u e a n d w i s d o m a n d t h e a t t i t u d e of soul in w h i c h m a n m u s t b e if h e is t o r e c e i v e t h e s e gifts of G o d ' s g r a c e . P h i l o w a s w e l l a w a r e of t h e d a n g e r of b e i n g m i s u n d e r s t o o d in h i s t e a c h i n g a b o u t G o d ' s i n t e r c o u r s e w i t h t h e soul. A f t e r m e n t i o n i n g t h e d i v i n e b e g e t t i n g of I s a a c , h e w a r n s t h e r e a d e r t h a t "this s a y i n g is n o t for all t o h e a r , s t r o n g l y d o e s t h e e v i l t i d e of s u p e r s t i t i o n
so
(SstaiSai[xovia) f l o w in o u r m i n d s
and drown u n m a n l y and degenerate souls"
( M u t . N o m . 1 3 8 ) . L i k e w i s e in
Cher. 48 h e c a u t i o n s t h o s e w h o h a v e b e e n i n i t i a t e d i n t o t h e s e " h o l y m y s t e r ies" n o t t o b a b b l e of t h e s e s a c r e d t h i n g s t o a n y of t h e u n i n i t i a t e d
(01 anurjToi).
See also L e g . A l l . 1 1 1 : 2 1 9 . A p p a r e n t l y h e felt t h a t t h e i g n o r a n t a n d
un-
i n s t r u c t e d c o u l d e a s i l y c o n f u s e his a l l e g o r i z i n g w i t h p a g a n m y t h s t h a t t o l d of t h e g o d s m a t i n g w i t h m o r t a l b e i n g s . 1
G o o d e n o u g h in p a r t i c u l a r (Light,
b i s e x u a l i t y of S o p h i a in P h i l o ' s
p p . 1 9 , 2 0 1 - 2 0 2 , 248-49) stresses
writings.
the
THE DIVINE IMPREGNATION OF THE SOUL texts
is the
contrast
63
b e t w e e n a c t i v e a n d passive, p r i m a r y
and
s e c o n d a r y , G o d a n d m a n . T h e male-female t e r m i n o l o g y is s i m p l y a v e r y v i v i d m e a n s of concretizing o r g i v i n g expression t o these contrasts. and
To
stress o n l y
characteristics
the
sexual-mythological
of this l a n g u a g e
background
is t o misunderstand
Philo
completely. Likewise, m a n y of the o t h e r attributes of Sophia a n d A r e t e as P h i l o p o r t r a y s t h e m are t o a large e x t e n t t o b e e x p l a i n e d in terms of the d e m a n d s of the particular
s u b j e c t being dealt with,
and
p r o b a b l y n o t in terms of a n y fixed understanding of these figures that P h i l o inherited from paganism. T h u s , for e x a m p l e , A r e t e c a n function not o n l y as the male figure w h o sows g o o d seed in the h u m a n soul, or as the female figure w h o receives the seed f r o m G o d , b u t A r e t e c a n also b e the seed that is s o w n in the h u m a n soul (Leg.
All. I I I : I 8 O - 8 I ,
D e u s I m m . 137, et al.) or the offspring of
G o d ' s intercourse w i t h the soul (Praem. P o e n . 159-60, F u g . 50-52, et a l . ) .
1
P h i l o presents n o c o n n e c t e d a c c o u n t , n o " b i o g r a p h y " or
" v i t a " of S o p h i a a n d A r e t e such as is f o u n d for S o p h i a in V a l e n t i n 2
ianism or for E n n o i a in O p h i t e G n o s t i c i s m . H e finds n o need to explain the origin of m a n a n d the w o r l d b y m e a n s of a s e x u a l m y t h i c a l d r a m a of creation. H i s m a i n c o n c e r n is n o t t o explain the origin of things b u t t o s h o w h o w the one G o d , the origin of all that is, is related t o the w o r l d of created being a n d
particularly
3
t o m a n . O n a c o s m i c - p h i l o s o p h i c a l level the L o g o s , Sophia, and the P o w e r s (Suvdcfxetc) function as intermediaries b e t w e e n G o d a n d the created w o r l d . T h e y are t o b e v i e w e d f r o m within the c o n t e x t of the
i m m a n e n c e v s . the
transcendence
of G o d . On a
personal-
1
T h e s e are o n l y a f e w of t h e p o s s i b l e v a r i a t i o n s . I n C o n g r . 23 A b r a h a m ' s m a t i n g w i t h S a r a h is i n t e r p r e t e d as "the m i n d w h i c h aspires t o s t u d y a n d t o g a i n k n o w l e d g e " m a t i n g w i t h A r e t e . H a g a r , t h e c o n c u b i n e , in t h i s c a s e is e q u i v a l e n t t o " t h e e n t i r e e n c y c l i c a l e d u c a t i o n . " Still a n o t h e r p a t t e r n is f o u n d in s u c h t e x t s a s L e g . A l l . I I 4 9 a n d C h e r . 49, w h e r e A r e t 6 is e m p l o y e d within the divine impregnation context on a cosmic scale: G o d m a t e s with A r e t 6 o r S o p h i a a n d p r o d u c e s b y t h i s u n i o n t h e u n i v e r s e (xa oXa, xa o-i>u.7tavxa; see L e i s e g a n g , Pneuma Hagion, p. 52). 2
See H a n s J o n a s , The Gnostic
the Beginnings 3
of Christianity
Religion.
The Message
of the Alien
God
and
(1958), p p . 1 7 4 - 2 0 5 .
T h i s is n o t t o i m p l y t h a t t h e m a i n c o n c e r n of t h e G n o s t i c s is p r o t o l o g i c a l . L i k e Philo, t h e y t o o are soteriologically oriented. S e x u a l - m y t h i c a l d r a m a , h o w e v e r , p l a y s a d e c i s i v e role in m o s t G n o s t i c s y s t e m s in d e s c r i b i n g t h e origin of m a n , w h i c h is n o t t h e c a s e in P h i l o .
6
SOTERIOLOGY AND PROPHETIC INSPIRATION
4
religious level the L o g o s , Sophia, a n d A r e t e likewise serve as i n t e r 1
m e d i a r i e s , a l t h o u g h n o t in such a w a y as t o e x c l u d e the p o s s i b i l i t y of a direct relationship b e t w e e n G o d a n d m a n .
1
F o r e x a m p l e , n o t e h o w e a s i l y P h i l o is a b l e t o c a p i t a l i z e o n t h e p a r t i c u l a r
w o r d i n g of G e n . 1 : 2 6 - 2 7 . M a n w a s p a t t e r n e d n o t xa-ra 8e6v b u t x a x ' ebcova (i.e. t h e L o g o s ) TOU 8EOU. F o r a l e n g t h y d i s c u s s i o n of t h i s u s a g e , s e e
especially pp. 52-70.
Jervell,
CHAPTER
FOUR
CONCLUSION A. SUMMARY OF PRECEDING DISCUSSION Our e x a m i n a t i o n of P h i l o ' s use of the categories m a l e a n d female has c o n t r i b u t e d to a n e w u n d e r s t a n d i n g of a n u m b e r of i m p o r t a n t passages in his writings. It is n o w t i m e briefly t o s u m m a r i z e
the
results so far o b t a i n e d a n d indicate those areas where this m o n o g r a p h m a y e n h a n c e further s t u d y of the writings of the Gnostics, the N e w Testament, and Contemporary Judaism. In o p p o s i t i o n to m a n y older writings o n Philo, this s t u d y
has
s h o w n that the avOpco-rcoc; created xoc-u-a -rijv zixova Osou m e n t i o n e d in O p . M u n d . 134 is p r o b a b l y to b e identified w i t h the rational soul of m a n , the n o u s , a n d is n o t a n d r o g y n o u s — e v e n in the sense of a pre-differentiated
c o m b i n a t i o n of m a l e
and
female —but
rather
asexual. T h e identification of the avOpcoTOc; xa-ra -rijv sbcova Osou of Op.
M u n d . 134 w i t h the " a n d r o g y n o u s " yzviy.bc, avOpcoTOc; of L e g .
All. I I : i 3 , w h i c h has usually b e e n p r e s u p p o s e d in the discussion of this issue, has b e e n s h o w n t o b e w r o n g . T h e rational soul of m a n , w h i c h is o n e a n d indivisible a n d closely related t o the L o g o s a n d G o d himself, in n o w a y participates in sexuality. It is rather m a n ' s irrational soul, w h i c h includes the b o d y , that participates in the male-female p o l a r i t y . T h e categories m a l e a n d female thus a p p l y t o m a n ' s m o r t a l nature, n o t t o that
immortal
part of m a n c r e a t e d after the i m a g e of G o d . H o w e v e r , P h i l o also uses the categories male a n d female in a n other sense. A c c o r d i n g t o this s e c o n d usage m a n ' s rational soul is t h o u g h t of as male, his irrational soul as female. B u t male in this c o n t e x t indicates asexuality, whereas female p o i n t s t o the realm, the sphere of the male-female polarity. second
usage
female
terminology
is
always
sexual
I n terms of this used
with
highly
p e j o r a t i v e c o n n o t a t i o n s , m a l e t e r m i n o l o g y in a t h o r o u g h l y p o s i t i v e fashion. T h i s p e j o r a t i v e usage of female t e r m i n o l o g y is seen m o s t clearly in those passages where Philo takes w o m a n t o refer allegoric a l l y to alaQfjaic, a n d m a n t o refer t o vou?. P h i l o ' s l o w estimate of the female is also frequently seen, h o w e v e r , in his d e s c r i p t i o n of actual w o m a n .
ALGHJ, I I I
5
66
CONCLUSION In Chapter I I I the male-female t e r m i n o l o g y w a s s h o w n t o play a
significant role in Philo's description of progress in the m o r a l and religious life. T h e themes of b e c o m i n g male, b e c o m i n g o n e , and b e c o m i n g a virgin, although
b y no means dominant
m o t i f s in
Philo's writings, were seen t o b e t h o r o u g h l y consistent with his wider usage of the categories male and female. T h e earlier assertion that Philo frequently associates maleness with the realm of the asexual, was g i v e n n e w support in Chapter I I I , insofar as it w a s s h o w n that b e c o m i n g male is r o u g h l y equivalent t o b e c o m i n g a virgin. Our s t u d y of the divine i m p r e g n a t i o n m o t i f indicated that P h i l o ' s use of the categories male and female in reference t o Arete, Sophia, and the L o g o s is purely functional, n e v e r o n t o l o g i c a l . These figures in n o sense participate in t h e male-female polarity. R a t h e r , t h e y are t h o u g h t of as male or female o n l y in terms of their functioning as a c t i v e and d o m i n a n t , in w h i c h case t h e y are considered male, or passive a n d r e c e p t i v e , in w h i c h case t h e y are described as female. Therefore t o speak of S o p h i a or A r e t e in Philo as a n d r o g y n o u s is misleading. A t this p o i n t Philo differs substantially f r o m m o s t of the Gnostics. P h i l o is also distinct from m o s t of the Gnostics insofar as he never uses s e x u a l - m y t h i c a l m e t a p h o r s in describing the creation of the w o r l d and of the rational soul of m a n . F o r Philo, the categories male and female function within
the realm of creation a n d are n o t
used, as t h e y are, for e x a m p l e , in Valentinianism, t o describe the fallible, erring part of the G o d h e a d . F o r Philo, G o d is asexual, i.e. c o m p l e t e l y b e y o n d or outside of the male-female polarity.
B . CORRELATIONS WITH SPECIFIC GNOSTIC TEXTS I . The Use of the Categories Male
and Female
in Gnostic
Writings
A s Jervell p o i n t s o u t , it is possible t o distinguish b e t w e e n those G n o s t i c writings that m a k e use of the categories male and female in a radically dualistic fashion and those that use these categories 1
t o describe the divine in its i n v o l v e m e n t in the w o r l d . T h e best e x a m p l e of the former, i.e. a radically dualistic s y s t e m w i t h refer ence t o the categories male a n d female, is found in the P s e u d o -
1
Pages
161-65.
CORRELATIONS WITH SPECIFIC GNOSTIC TEXTS
67
1
C l e m e n t i n e literature. H e r e the female is identified w i t h all t h a t is evil and sinful a n d is that from w h i c h o n e s h o u l d try t o free himself. "The
m a l e is w h o l l y truth, the female w h o l l y f a l s e h o o d . "
2
The
present w o r l d is 7tp6axaipo<;, 8?jXu<;; it is ayvota. T h e w o r l d t o c o m e is 3
atSio?, app7]v; it is yvwo-u;. T h e female p o l l u t e s those w h o t o u c h her. She stirs u p wars. She d e c e i v e s those w h o believe her.
4
A s Jervell
p o i n t s out, s a l v a t i o n in the P s e u d o - C l e m e n t i n e s is precisely t h e b r e a k i n g loose f r o m the p o w e r of the female, the separation of the m a l e from the f e m a l e .
5
B u t in such G n o s t i c writings as those of the Naassenes a n d the Valentinians, Jervell maintains,
the female element, rather t h a n
b e i n g s i m p l y identified with evil a n d sin, is that p a r t of the d i v i n e 6
that b e c o m e s i n v o l v e d in the c r e a t e d w o r l d . T h e c o m b i n a t i o n of b o d y and spirit
(or m i n d ) in m a n was e x p l a i n e d b y m a n y of the
Gnostics as the result of desire o n the p a r t of s o m e aspect of the divine
(frequently
the
Primal
M a n ) for the
earthly,
i.e. l i b i d o
7
directed t o w a r d s n a t u r e . I t is this l o v e of nature that is the cause of
all m a n ' s
troubles a n d finally of death
itself.
8
O n l y as
man
recognizes his true origin is he able t o o v e r c o m e the p o w e r of the earthly
a n d return t o his real h o m e , i.e. the transcendent
realm
b e y o n d nature. W i t h reference t o the s y s t e m of S i m o n Magus, Jervell
writes:
" D a s W e i b l i c h e ist . . . n i c h t anderes als das p n e u m a t i s c h e E l e m e n t als M o g l i c h k e i t (8uvafi.i<;) in der W e l t . D a s W e i b l i c h e ist d e m n a c h nicht das B o s e , sondern das ' G e w a g t e ' . . . . D a s Mannliche b l e i b t i m H i m m e l , w a h r e n d das W e i b l i c h e eine irdische G e s c h i c h t e h a t . "
9
T h e female element, if it is t o b e s a v e d , m u s t reunite w i t h the m a l e 1
O n t h e c o m p l e x s o u r c e p r o b l e m in t h e P s e u d o - C l e m e n t i n e w r i t i n g s , see
Georg
Strecker,
Das
Judenchristentum
in
den
Pseudokletnentinen
(1958),
especially p p . 35-96. 2
Horn. I I I . 27.
3
Horn. I I . 1 5 .
4
Horn. I I I . 24.
5
P a g e 1 6 5 . I n t e r m s of m a r r i a g e a n d t h e s e x u a l life, h o w e v e r , t h e P s e u d o -
Clementines
are s o m e w h a t
ambiguous.
O n the
one
hand
we
have
such
s t a t e m e n t s as t h o s e j u s t referred t o , y e t t h e r e are also p a s s a g e s t h a t e n c o u r a g e m a r r i a g e — a l t h o u g h as a n a n e c d o t e a g a i n s t a d u l t e r y !
(Horn.
III.
d e c l a r e t h a t "desire is n o t e v i l w i t h r e s p e c t t o m a r r i a g e " (Horn. cf. a l s o X I X . 2 1 , X I I I . 6
Pages
16).
161-63.
7
J e r v e l l , p . 1 4 1 . Cf. also J o n a s , Gnostic
8
Jervell,
p. 141.
9
Jervell,
p. 162.
Religion,
p. 152.
68)—and X I X . 18;
68
CONCLUSION
element. " B l e i b e n die b e i d e n getrennt, geht das W e i b l i c h e mit der Welt verloren."
1
Similarly, in Valentinianism, a c c o r d i n g to Jervell, particularly as reflected
in
Clement of A l e x a n d r i a ' s Excerpta
ex Theodoto,
the
female element is seen as the p n e u m a t i c in its i n v o l v e m e n t in the w o r l d . It is the earthly part of the h e a v e n l y Sophia. T h e female is that part of the G o d h e a d w h i c h is fallible or c a p a b l e of error.
2
T h u s , just as in the s y s t e m of S i m o n Magus, and in sharp contrast to the G n o s t i c i s m of the P s e u d o - C l e m e n t i n e s or of the Manichaeans, salvation i n v o l v e s the reuniting of the female V a l e n t i n i a n s w i t h the 3
m a l e S a v i o r . T h i s reunion takes place in an a n t i c i p a t o r y fashion in the s a c r a m e n t of the bridal c h a m b e r .
4
A t this point it should b e n o t e d —although such a c o m p a r i s o n m a y b e s o m e w h a t misleading —that in relationship to his use of the categories m a l e a n d female P h i l o stands closer to J o n a s ' " I r a n i a n " t y p e of G n o s t i c i s m t h a n t o his " S y r i a n - A l e x a n d r i a n " t y p e . B y this is m e a n t that for P h i l o there is n o m e n t i o n of the r e d e m p t i o n of the female a n d the return t o an original a n d r o g y n o u s state. Man progresses in the m o r a l a n d spiritual life b y fleeing f r o m that w h i c h is female. This is similar to w h a t w e find in the P s e u d o - C l e m e n t i n e s , where a n d r o g y n e i t y is a perversity, not the goal t o w a r d s w h i c h o n e strives. Salvation in the P s e u d o - C l e m e n t i n e s consists of the separation
of the m a l e from
the female, n o t in their
reunion.
5
1
Jervell, p . 1 6 2 .
2
Jervell, p . 1 6 2 . S e e J o n a s , p . 1 7 6 , w h o refers t o t h e f e m a l e T h o u g h t o f
G o d , u s u a l l y u n d e r t h e n a m e of W i s d o m , as p e r s o n i f y i n g " t h e fallible a s p e c t of G o d . " 3
T h i s d i s t i n c t i o n of Jervell's b e t w e e n t h e t y p e of G n o s t i c i s m r e p r e s e n t e d
b y t h e P s e u d o - C l e m e n t i n e s a n d t h a t of V a l e n t i n i a n i s m is e s s e n t i a l l y
the
s a m e a s t h a t m a d e b y J o n a s b e t w e e n t h e " I r a n i a n " t y p e of G n o s t i c i s m a n d the
"Syrian-Alexandrian" type
(cf.
Jonas, pp. 57, 105,
4
See d i s c u s s i o n a n d references in Jervell, p p . 1 6 1 - 6 3 .
5
Cf. Jervell,
236-37).
p. 165.
A s w a s seen in C h a p . I I , C , O p . M u n d . 1 5 1 ff. i n c o r p o r a t e s s o m e f e a t u r e s of t h e m y t h of t h e a n d r o g y n o u s P r i m a l M a n . B u t O p . M u n d . 1 5 1 ff. c a n n o t easily b e r e c o n c i l e d w i t h t h e m a i n b o d y of P h i l o ' s w r i t i n g s , a n d , f u r t h e r m o r e , t h e r e is n o " c o r r e s p o n d i n g " p a s s a g e in P h i l o w h e r e he d e s c r i b e s
salvation
as a r e t u r n t o t h e a n d r o g y n o u s s t a t e of t h e Trpcoxoc; av9pco7ioc;. I n a n u m b e r of p a s s a g e s , h o w e v e r , P h i l o d o e s s p e a k of t h e wise m a n or t h e p e r f e c t m a n in a f a s h i o n r e m i n i s c e n t of his d e s c r i p t i o n of t h e np&roq
avSporeoi;, b u t w i t h
n o m e n t i o n of a n d r o g y n e i t y . See d i s c u s s i o n a n d references in V o l k e r , schritt,
p p . 2 6 0 - 7 9 . G o o d e n o u g h , Light,
Fort-
p p . 1 3 4 , 1 4 9 - 5 0 , 1 7 9 , 207, refers t o
t h e t h e m e of t h e " r e d e m p t i o n of t h e b o d y " in P h i l o ' s w r i t i n g s , a n d , i n d e e d , a n u m b e r of p a s s a g e s a t l e a s t p o i n t in t h i s d i r e c t i o n (see e s p e c i a l l y Q u a e s t . in
CORRELATIONS WITH SPECIFIC GNOSTIC TEXTS F o r the m o s t part, h o w e v e r , it is in the
6
9
"Syrian-Alexandrian"
t y p e of Gnosticism, not in the " I r a n i a n " t y p e , that o n e finds significant parallels to s o m e of the Philonic t e r m i n o l o g y that has been investigated in this thesis. 2. Becoming
Male
As w e saw in the preceding chapter, w h e n Philo uses the m o t i f of b e c o m i n g male, he refers to m a n ' s forsaking the realm of female sense-perception, i.e. the realm of the male-female p o l a r i t y , a n d granting to the rational soul its rightful sovereignty. Likewise w e saw that his description of the rational soul as male points t o the asexuality, not the sexuality, of this part of m a n ' s being. In light of this use of the categories m a l e and female in Philo, it is interesting t o n o t e a saying f o u n d in the Stromateis
( I I I . 9. 63) of Clement of
Alexandria. But those who set themselves against God's creation because of continence, which has a fair-sounding name, recount the words which were spoken to Salome, which I mentioned earlier. They are handed down, I believe, in the Gospel According to the Egyptians. For they say that the Saviour himself said: " I am come to undo (or: destroy; xaxaXucrat ) the works of the female," b y female meaning lust, and b y works, birth and decay. J
T h e evaluation of the female in this o f t - q u o t e d a p o c r y p h a l saying of Jesus as well as in Clement's interpretive c o m m e n t is similar to w h a t w e h a v e seen in Philo, b u t it is difficult to g i v e an accurate assessment of this logion because w e k n o w almost n o t h i n g of the G o s p e l of the E g y p t i a n s , f r o m w h i c h Clement believes it to h a v e c o m e . O n the surface, at least, the saying appears t o c o m e from a milieu such as that of the P s e u d o - C l e m e n t i n e s . Salvation i n v o l v e s the destruction of all that is female. In Stromateis
I I I . 13. 92, h o w e v e r , Clement q u o t e s another passage
from the Gospel of the E g y p t i a n s , w h i c h represents an evaluation of male a n d female t y p i c a l of Valentinian Gnosticism. When Salome asked when the things she had inquired about would be known, the Lord said: " W h e n you have trampled on the garment of shame and when the two become one and the male with the female (is) neither male nor female." G e n . I I : 1 1 , 1 2 ) . H o w e v e r , in n o i n s t a n c e d o e s P h i l o , like P a u l (cf. I C o r . 1 5 , II
Cor. 1
See
5 ) , s p e a k of a n y discussion
below.
k i n d of b o d i l y e x i s t e n c e after
death.
CONCLUSION
70
H e r e there is n o m e n t i o n of the destruction of the female. T h e saying rather points t o the neutralization of the female in the u n i t y of the a n d r o g y n o u s m a n . Nonetheless, these t w o logia p r o b a b l y are c o m p a t i b l e w i t h each other, for
xocTaAueiv
can m e a n " t o dissolve, break u p , annul," as well
1
as " t o d e s t r o y . " T o annul or dissolve the w o r k s of the female can be taken, then, t o refer t o the neutralization of the female t h r o u g h its union w i t h the male, rather than t o the absolute destruction of the female. It is precisely this n u m b i n g or neutralizing o f the female t h a t constitutes its r e d e m p t i o n . B o t h sayings, then, are represent a t i v e of J o n a s ' " S y r i a n - A l e x a n d r i a n " t y p e of G n o s t i c i s m . L o g i o n 114 of the Gospel of T h o m a s also makes use of the m o t i f of b e c o m i n g male. Simon Peter said to them: Let Mary go out from among us, because women are not worthy of the Life. Jesus said: See, I shall lead her, so that I will make her male, that (iva) she too m a y become a living spirit (7rveij(j.a), resembling y o u males. For every woman who makes herself male will enter the Kingdom of Heaven. 2
Interpreted from the s t a n d p o i n t of the P s e u d o - C l e m e n t i n e s , this logion w o u l d refer t o the denial of the corruptible present world, w h i c h is female, in order that o n e m i g h t participate in the w o r l d t o c o m e , w h i c h is male (Cf. Horn. I I . 15. 3). This w o u l d b e similar to the m e a n i n g of b e c o m i n g male in Philo, e x c e p t that P h i l o w o r k s within the dualistic framework of aitrOYjaic. vs. vouc rather than within the eschatological schema of present w o r l d v s . w o r l d t o c o m e of the P s e u d o - C l e m e n tines. As
Gartner
3
p o i n t s out, h o w e v e r ,
reflected in the Excerpta
4
ex Theodoto
the Valentinian G n o s t i c i s m of Clement of A l e x a n d r i a
presents a n o t h e r possibility of interpretation.
In this c o n t e x t the
male element is associated w i t h the Saviour, the angels, a n d the higher w o r l d . T h e female element, o n the other hand, is that part of m a n that can b e saved. T h e Valentinians themselves, as the pneumatics
or those
of the
enlightenment,
are referred
to
as
" w o m e n , " and " f e m a l e . " T h i s p a t t e r n is reflected in such a passage
as Excerpta
ex Theodoto
21:1-3.
1
Cf. u s e of xaxapystv in R o m . 3 : 3 . T h i s a n d f o l l o w i n g t r a n s l a t i o n s f r o m t h e G o s p e l of T h o m a s A . G u i l l a u m o n t , et al., The Gospel According to Thomas (1959). 2
3
4
Cf. G a r t n e r , Thomas, p. 254. G a r t n e r , Thomas, p p . 2 5 4 - 5 5 . S e e also J e r v e l l , p p .
162-63.
are
by
CORRELATIONS WITH SPECIFIC GNOSTIC TEXTS
To
"XOCT' elxova 6EOU kiioL-qaev auTOix;,
auTOu?"
TY)V 7rpoPoXy]v r/]v
aperev xal
71
69)Xu e7roi7]erev
apl(7TY]v cpaerlv 01 OuaXevTiviavoij TT]<;
Socpia? Xeye
xal
TOO jiiv appevixa ayyeXixa xaXouai,
TO Siacpepov 7tveufi.a. OUTWI; xal
era
TOO 6Y]XUXOO Se
TOU 'ASOOJI. TO jxev
appevixov Ifxewev a u T W , 7rav Se TO OYJXUXOV cntlpfia a p a arc' a u T o u Euoo yeyovev, acp' ^
al 6v)Xeiai,
OOT' exewou o l appevet;. TOO OUV
a p p e v i x a jxeTa TOU Xoyou auvearaXy), evouTai TOI<; dyyeXoo-t; xal ei? avSpa
TOO 6T)XUXOO 8k a x a v S p w O e v T a
eic 7rXy)pw|i.a /wpet. 8100 TOUTO yj yuvv]
XeyeTai xal 7) £VTau6a exxXYjala zlc, ayyeXout;.
Here it is clear that T h e o d o t u s is n o t talking a b o u t individual m e n a n d w o m e n b u t rather a b o u t the r e d e m p t i o n of the through
their union
with
appevixa — 7) exXoyy]) a n d
the
angels.
1
The male
the f e m a l e (drfku =
Valentinians (apaev
= TOO
TOO 07]Xuxa — Y] XXYJO-U;),
w h i c h were originally o n e in the h e a v e n l y S o p h i a , are reunited
as
2
the female is c h a n g e d o n t o the m a l e . A s Irenaeus p o i n t s o u t , this c o n j u g a t i o n takes place p r o l e p t i c a l l y in the sacrament of the bridal chamber.
3
S u c h a s c h e m e is possible b e c a u s e the Valentinians d i d
n o t identify the female with a n y absolute principle of evil b u t rather w i t h the fallible part of G o d , w h i c h b e c a m e i n v o l v e d in the material w o r l d . T h r o u g h o u t the A p o c r y p h a l N e w T e s t a m e n t a n d o t h e r writings from the s e c o n d a n d third centuries w e find n o t o n l y a
strong
preference for the m a l e sex as o v e r against the female, b u t
also
n u m e r o u s instances where the m a l e is closely identified w i t h
the
d i v i n e Spirit a n d the h e a v e n l y life, a n d the female with the present corruptible w o r l d . In the A c t s of T h o m a s 27, for e x a m p l e , T h o m a s p r a y s that the " c o m m u n i o n of the m a l e " (Y) xoivwvia TOU appevot;) m a y c o m e u p o n three m e n w h o h a d n e w l y b e e n c o n v e r t e d t o his teaching. T h e expression o c c u r s in c o n j u n c t i o n with such
other
phrases as "highest gift of g r a c e , " " h o l y n a m e of Christ that is a b o v e e v e r y n a m e , " " H o l y Spirit," a n d " p o w e r of the Most H i g h . " It is thus clear that " m a l e " in this t e x t refers to the realm o f G o d , Christ, a n d the Spirit.
1
heavenly
4
Cf. Excerpta ex Theodolo 6 7 - 6 8 , 79-80. Cf. Jervell, p . 1 6 2 . Adversus haereses I . 2 1 . 3 = H a r v e y I . 1 4 . 2. Cf. Jervell, p p . 1 6 2 - 6 3 . Cf. t h e reference t o " m a l e a t t i r e " in A c t s of P h i l i p 44. N o t e also T e r t u l lian, De cultu feminarum I . 2. 2
3
4
CONCLUSION
72 3. Becoming
One
I n Chapter I I I w e s a w t h a t O p . M u n d . 151 ff. reflects
certain
aspects of the m y t h of the a n d r o g y n o u s m a n . W e also saw, h o w e v e r , t h a t P h i l o elsewhere specifically rejects the P l a t o n i c f o r m of this m y t h and that, apart f r o m O p . M u n d . 151 ff., h e n o w h e r e adheres t o or m a k e s use of the m y t h of the a n d r o g y n o u s m a n . Philo n o w h e r e speaks of a return t o the a n d r o g y n o u s state of the Ttpw-roc av0pwTtoc as the goal t o w a r d w h i c h o n e is t o strive. In respect t o the m o t i f of the a n d r o g y n o u s m a n , O p . M u n d . 151 ff. remains m o r e or less isolated from the rest of Philo's writings. I n various Gnostic writings, h o w e v e r , especially in s o m e of the treatises from N a g H a m a d i , the a n d r o g y n o u s m a n m o t i f plays a significant
role. T h e s e writings reflect the v i e w t h a t m a n
was
originally one, a c o m b i n a t i o n of male and female. A s l o n g as m a n remained a single being, the male and female elements of his being were in effect n o n - o p e r a t i v e or in a neutralized state. B i s e x u a l i t y in this case is functionally equivalent t o asexuality. It w a s the dis solution of this original a n d r o g y n o u s u n i t y
i n t o the
male
and
female sexes that w a s the beginning of m a n ' s trouble. Man thus b e c a m e aware of himself as a sexual being. H e b e c a m e aware of sexual desire and f o u n d himself t o b e d i v i d e d and also subject t o death. O n l y w h e n m a l e and female are reunited c h a m b e r will death b e o v e r c o m e . B u t , as in the of the Excerpta
ex Theodoto,
in the
bridal
Valentinianism
this reuniting of male and
female
primarily refers n o t t o individual m e n and w o m e n b u t t o the " f e m a l e " Christians and the " m a l e " Saviour, i.e. Christ. L o g i o n 71 in the G o s p e l of Philip clearly reflects such a pattern. When Eve was in Adam, there was no death; but when she was sep arated from him death came into being. Again if < s h e > go in, and he take < h e r > to himself, death will no longer exist. 1
A s Grant points o u t , this passage u n d o u b t e d l y reflects a n u m b e r of t e x t s in Gen. 1 and 2. Gen. 1:26 — " m a l e and female created
he
t h e m " — c o u l d easily b e t a k e n as p o i n t i n g t o the creation of m a n as one 1
a n d r o g y n o u s being, especially since it is n o t until Gen. 2:22
T h e t r a n s l a t i o n here a n d o n t h e f o l l o w i n g p a g e s is t h a t of R . M c L . W i l s o n , The Gospel of Philip. Translated from the Coptic text, with an Intro duction and Commentary ( 1 9 6 2 ) . T h e b r a c k e t e d p r o n o u n s are m a s c u l i n e in t h e o r i g i n a l , b u t t h i s e m e n d a t i o n of S c h e n k e (so also W i l s o n ) a p p e a r s necessary to the meaning.
CORRELATIONS WITH SPECIFIC GNOSTIC TEXTS
73
t h a t there is a n y reference t o E v e being separated f r o m A d a m .
1
T h e union of m a n a n d w o m a n in marriage is a representation of the original a n d r o g y n o u s u n i t y of m a n a n d also an a r c h e t y p e of salva tion. P r o t o l o g y a n d e s c h a t o l o g y here coalesce. L o g i o n 78 in the
G o s p e l of Philip reflects a similar
pattern.
If the woman had not separated from the man, she would not die with the man. His separation became the beginning of death. Because of this Christ came, in order that he might remove the separation which was from the beginning, and again unite the t w o ; and that he might give life to those who died in the separation, and unite them. T h i s saying, h o w e v e r , g o e s b e y o n d L o g i o n 71 insofar as it points t o the role that Christ p l a y s in the restoration of the original a n d r o g ynous unity.
2
L o g i o n 73 indicates t h a t the possibility of salvation is n o t o p e n t o e v e r y o n e : " A bridal c h a m b e r is not for the beasts, n o r is it for the slaves, nor for the w o m e n defiled; but it is for t h e free m e n a n d v i r g i n s . " Grant interprets " b e a s t s " t o refer t o " m e n c o n t r o l l e d b y material s o u l s , " a n d " s l a v e s " t o refer t o " t h o s e w h o h a v e n o part in G n o s t i c f r e e d o m . "
3
T h e i m p o r t a n c e of this t h e m e of the bridal c h a m b e r in the G o s p e l of Philip is seen not o n l y f r o m its f r e q u e n c y t h r o u g h o u t the G o s p e l b u t also b y the fact that it is e m p l o y e d in the final l o g i o n of the G o s p e l (127), w h i c h p r o b a b l y functions as a kind of s u m m a r y of the w h o l e . If anyone becomes a son of the bridal chamber he will receive the light. If anyone does not receive it while he is in this world, he will not receive it in the other place. He who has received that light will not be seen, nor can he be detained; and none shall be able to torment one of this kind even if he dwell in the world. A n d again when he goes out of the world he has already received the truth in images. . . . I n Philo w e saw that a l t h o u g h aspects of the sexual relationship can b e used as an allegory of G o d ' s dealings w i t h the soul, n o n e t h e 1
Chr.
R . M . G r a n t , " T h e M y s t e r y of M a r r i a g e in t h e G o s p e l of P h i l i p , " 1 5 ( 1 9 6 1 ) , p . 1 3 4 . Cf. also W i l s o n , Philip, p. 134.
2
Vig.
A s W i l s o n , Philip, p . 1 4 2 , p o i n t s o u t in reference t o t h e first p a r t of L o g i o n 7 9 , in t h e G o s p e l of P h i l i p it is f r e q u e n t l y d i f f i c u l t t o t e l l w h e t h e r t h e reference is " t o o r d i n a r y h u m a n m a r r i a g e o r t o t h e u n i o n in t h e final c o n s u m m a t i o n , of w h i c h e a r t h l y m a r r i a g e is t h e ' i m a g e . ' " 3
G r a n t , Vig. Chr. 1 5 ( 1 9 6 1 ) , p . 138.
CONCLUSION
74
less actual sexual relationships b e t w e e n m e n a n d w o m e n are prin cipally regulated b y the L a w . B u t as Gartner p o i n t s out, " i n the G n o s t i c s y s t e m s the m a n - w o m a n relationship is m o t i v a t e d basically b y the
structure of the h e a v e n l y w o r l d , the m a l e a n d
p o w e r s w h i c h are striving after u n i t y . " The motif
female
1
of b e c o m i n g o n e b y o v e r c o m i n g the
male-female
p o l a r i t y is also seen in L o g i o n 22 of the Gospel of T h o m a s . Jesus, seeing s o m e children b e i n g suckled, says t o his disciples: " T h e s e children . . . are like t h o s e w h o enter the K i n g d o m . " T h e disciples t h e r e u p o n ask Jesus:
"Shall w e then, being children, enter
the
K i n g d o m ? " Jesus replies: When you make the two one, and when you make the inner as the outer and the outer as the inner and the above as the below, and when you make the male and the female into a single one, so that the male will not be male and the female (not) be female, . . . then shall you enter [the Kingdom]. Jesus here spells o u t the necessary c o n d i t i o n s for entrance i n t o the K i n g d o m . O n e of these is t h a t m a l e a n d female b e m a d e i n t o a single o n e . T h e r e is n o m e n t i o n here of an a n d r o g y n o u s u n i t y as in the G o s p e l of Philip, b u t the t h o u g h t seems t o b e basically the same. T h e little children represent a k i n d of pre-sexual i n n o c e n c e that functions a n a l o g o u s l y t o the sexual i n n o c e n c e of the original a n d r o g y n o u s m a n (cf. Gospel of Philip, L o g i a 71 a n d 78). T h e sexual p o l a r i t y is established o n l y w h e n E v e separates
herself from
Adam.
That
salvation i n v o l v e s such a neutralization of the sexual life is c o m p a t i b l e w i t h the interpretation
presented a b o v e of L o g i o n 114 in
the Gospel of T h o m a s . This neutralization of the sexual life can b e d e s c r i b e d in terms of b e c o m i n g male or in terms of m a l e a n d female b e c o m i n g a single o n e . 1
G a r t n e r , Thomas,
2
p. 253.
2
T h i s i n t e r p r e t a t i o n f i n d s f u r t h e r c o n f i r m a t i o n in L o g i o n 37 of t h e G o s p e l of T h o m a s . H i s d i s c i p l e s s a i d : W h e n w i l t T h o u b e r e v e a l e d t o u s a n d w h e n will w e see T h e e ? J e s u s s a i d : W h e n y o u t a k e off y o u r c l o t h i n g w i t h o u t b e i n g a s h a m e d , a n d t a k e y o u r c l o t h e s a n d p u t t h e m u n d e r y o u r feet as t h e little c h i l d r e n a n d t r e a d o n t h e m , t h e n [shall y o u b e h o l d ] t h e S o n of t h e L i v i n g ( O n e ) a n d y o u shall n o t fear. Gartner" (Thomas, p . 250) p o i n t s o u t t h a t this l o g i o n is a g o o d e x a m p l e of t h e s u p p r e s s i o n of t h e e s c h a t o l o g i c a l q u e s t i o n in f a v o r of a k i n d of p s y c h o l o g i c a l i n t e r p r e t a t i o n of t h e v i c t o r y of t h e " i n n e r " m a n o v e r his p h y s i c a l i m p u l s e s . T h e disciples a s k a b o u t J e s u s ' p a r o u s i a , b u t t h e y are t o l d , in effect, t h a t t h i s is n o t t h e i m p o r t a n t issue. J e s u s ' c o m i n g is n o t t o b e t h o u g h t of in
CORRELATIONS WITH SPECIFIC GNOSTIC TEXTS 4. Becoming
a
75
Virgin
I n Chapter I I I w e c o n c l u d e d that w h e n Philo speaks of G o d m a k i n g a w o m a n into a virgin he is referring allegorically t o the state of m a n ' s soul. W h e n G o d " b e g i n s t o c o n s o r t w i t h the s o u l , " he enables m a n t o forsake the t y r a n n y
1
of w o m a n l y sense-per
c e p t i o n and grant t o t h e m i n d its place of rightful s o v e r e i g n t y . This t y p e of m o v e m e n t from the realm of sense-perception and
the
c r e a t e d w o r l d t o that of the transcendent sphere of nous or p n e u m a is c o m m o n in almost all of the G n o s t i c writings, b u t so far this s t u d y has u n c o v e r e d n o instances in the G n o s t i c writings where the m o t i f of b e c o m i n g a virgin is used in the allegorical sense in w h i c h it o c c u r s in Philo. Perhaps o n e reason for this is that the t h e m e of b e c o m i n g a virgin is f o u n d t o o frequently in the G n o s t i c writings in a near-literal sense t o permit its allegorical use w i t h o u t
con
siderable confusion. In a n u m b e r of the A p o c r y p h a l A c t s , for e x a m p l e , w e find great
emphasis p l a c e d o n h u s b a n d s
and w i v e s
forsaking sexual relations w i t h each other and returning t o a state 2
of chastity and p u r i t y . This m o v e m e n t f r o m sexual l o v e t o chastity is, in effect, a return t o the state of the pure virgin, n o t n o w under s t o o d spiritually b u t p h y s i c a l l y . I n V i t . Cont., in his description of the Therapeutae, Philo shows considerable admiration
for the
ideal of sexual abstinence
and
perpetual virginity. B u t this ideal always m o r e or less remains for h i m s o m e t h i n g t o b e a d m i r e d f r o m a distance. H e w a s far t o o m u c h a J e w not t o t a k e seriously the divine c o m m a n d t o b e fruitful
and
m u l t i p l y . T h u s there is n o t h i n g in Philo really c o m p a r a b l e t o the passages in s o m e of the A p o c r y p h a l A c t s where all sexual inter course is rejected as absolutely c o n t r a r y t o the will of G o d . In these writings the desired goal is t o return t o the state of the pure virgin, n o t just allegorically in terms of the relationship b e t w e e n sensep e r c e p t i o n and m i n d , b u t as a repudiation of all manifestations of actual sexuality.
t e r m s of a d e f i n i t e f u t u r e p o i n t in t i m e b u t in t e r m s of p r e s e n t e x p e r i e n c e . I t is m a n i f e s t in t h e o v e r c o m i n g o r n e u t r a l i z a t i o n of t h e s e x u a l d i f f e r e n c e s between
male
and
female,
which
is
clothing without being ashamed and
here s y m b o l i z e d
by
t a k i n g off
b e i n g as l i t t l e c h i l d r e n , i.e.
one's
sexually
innocent.
et
1
Cher.
2
Cf. A c t s of T h o m a s 1 4 , 5 1 , 6 1 , 9 8 - 1 0 3 ; A c t s of J o h n 6 3 ; A c t s of P e t e r 3 4 ; al.
50.
7
6
CONCLUSION C . FINAL
OBSERVATIONS
AND SUGGESTED
CORRELATIONS:
PHILO, THE GNOSTICS, THE N E W TESTAMENT,
CONTEMPORARY JUDAISM The
p r e v i o u s discussion has illustrated the value of this s t u d y
for the understanding
of specific G n o s t i c texts. Of e v e n greater
significance, h o w e v e r , m a y b e the possibility that is suggested b y this thesis of using the categories male a n d female as a k i n d of p r o b e or test case for e x a m i n i n g certain i m p o r t a n t similarities a n d differences in the writings of Philo, the Gnostics, the N e w T e s t a ment, and
C o n t e m p o r a r y J u d a i s m . T h i s possibility m o s t clearly
suggests itself in t w o specific areas.
i . The Evaluation
of the Created
World
W e h a v e seen that the basic orientation of Philo a n d the Gnostics t o w a r d s the created w o r l d is clearly reflected in their use of the categories male and female. T h e Gnostics v i e w creation either as inherently evil ( " I r a n i a n " t y p e ) or as the result of divine fal libility and error ( " S y r i a n - A l e x a n d r i a n " t y p e ) . In b o t h instances creation is p l a c e d in sharp antithesis t o the transcendent
world
of the divine. Philo, b y contrast, o n the basis of the T o r a h theoreti cally affirms the g o o d n e s s of creation, yet t h r o u g h o u t m o s t of his writings speaks of the created w o r l d as sharply o p p o s e d t o the transcendent gaining
realm of the divine. Salvation, for h i m , consists of
freedom from
the
imperious d e m a n d s
of the
created
w o r l d a n d learning t o live in the sphere of n o u s , that part of m a n w h i c h is like G o d himself. On the whole, the N e w T e s t a m e n t writers also affirm the g o o d n e s s 1
of c r e a t i o n , yet even a c u r s o r y e x a m i n a t i o n of the N e w T e s t a m e n t in reference t o the categories male and female suggests that m o r e actual n e g a t i v i t y t o w a r d s the created w o r l d and, in
particular,
t o w a r d s m a n ' s sexuality, is present in these writings than is usually admitted. I Cor. 7 is a g o o d e x a m p l e . Paul's preference for the
1
Col. New
Cf. R o m . i : 2 0 , 8 : 1 8 - 2 4 , 1:16;
Rev.
T
4
;
r
4.
2
0
; A c t s 4 : 2 4 , 1 4 : 1 5 , 1 7 : 24; E p h . 3 : 9 ;
Actually, the
writers t o w a r d s
p o s i t i v e a t t i t u d e of
c r e a t i o n is
inferred
lack from
g o o d n e s s of
from
various a
specific p a s s a g e s e x p l i c i t l y a s s e r t i n g t h e
sooner
the
of n e g a t i v e s t a t e m e n t s a n d f r o m t h e e m p h a s i s o n G o d as C r e a t o r t h a n any
Testament
4 : 1 1 , 10:6.
unmarried
creation.
FINAL OBSERVATIONS AND SUGGESTED CORRELATIONS
77
state w h i c h is reflected in this c h a p t e r is f r e q u e n t l y e x p l a i n e d in 1
t e r m s of his belief in the i m m i n e n c e of the p a r o u s i a . T h e s e v e r i t y o f the e s c h a t o l o g i c a l w o e s that are t o p r e c e d e Christ's return m a k e s it e x p e d i e n t n o t t o m a r r y , for the u n m a r r i e d will n o t b e
further
b u r d e n e d d o w n b y his c o n c e r n for his spouse (cf. v v . 25-35). Cross uses the a d j e c t i v e s " a p o c a l y p t i c " a n d " e s c h a t o l o g i c a l " t o refer t o the asceticism reflected in I Cor. 7 a n d in the writings of the Qumran sect. In
2
reference t o
I
Cor. 7:25-31,
the
term
"apocalyptic (or:
e s c h a t o l o g i c a l ) a s c e t i c i s m " is quite suitable, for P a u l here i n d e e d speaks of the t i m e of distress that will a c c o m p a n y the
passing
a w a y of the f o r m of this present age a n d the return of the L o r d in g l o r y . B u t in the following verses, this e s c h a t o l o g i c a l orientation is n o t q u i t e so clear. In v v . 32 ff. the contrast Paul m a k e s is n o t o n l y b e t w e e n the married a n d the unmarried b u t also b e t w e e n the L o r d a n d the w o r l d . B e i n g filled w i t h the cares of the w o r l d , the married person is m o r e i n t i m a t e l y tied t o the w o r l d t h a n the
unmarried,
a n d this closer b o n d w i t h the w o r l d m e a n s that he is d i v i d e d ([Asjiipio-Tou) in his interests.
3
Paul adds (v. 35) t h a t he says these
things n o t in order t o p l a c e a n y restraint u p o n the
Corinthians,
dXXa npbc, TO sua^Tjfxov xal suTtdpeSpov TW xuplco aTcepiaTcaaTWi;. A p
p a r e n t l y P a u l v i e w e d the marriage relationship, w i t h its a t t e n d a n t focus u p o n the things of the w o r l d , as m a k i n g it m o r e difficult t o serve the L o r d w i t h o u t inner division a n d d i s t r a c t i o n .
4
It w o u l d
appear, at least in part, that this is the reason for Paul's counsel that "it is well for a m a n n o t t o t o u c h a w o m a n " (v. 1). H e wishes
1
F o r e x a m p l e , see D o n a l d J. S e l b y , Toward the Understanding of St. Paul (1962), p. 266; H o w a r d C. K e e , Franklin W . Y o u n g , and Karlfried Froehlich,
Understanding 2
the New Testament
F r a n k M . C r o s s , Jr., The Ancient
Studies
(2nd e d . ; 1 9 6 5 ) , p p . 185-86. Library
of Qumran
and Modern
Biblical
( 1 9 5 8 ) , p p . 7 4 , 180.
3
A l t h o u g h P h i l o u s u a l l y c o n t r a s t s vouq a n d ataBrjais r a t h e r t h a n t h e L o r d a n d t h e w o r l d , n o n e t h e l e s s t h e r e is a c e r t a i n f u n c t i o n a l s i m i l a r i t y b e t w e e n t h e t h o u g h t of P a u l a n d P h i l o a t t h i s p o i n t . P h i l o also s p e a k s of t h e e v i l of b e i n g d i v i d e d . M a n is t o b e c o m e o n e b y m o v i n g f r o m t h e d u a l i t y of voo? a n d a'ia9rj
Thomas, 4
pp. 175-76.
S e e A p p e n d i x J.
7
CONCLUSION
8
t h a t all m e n were as he himself is, i.e. unmarried, y e t he recognizes that
not
all
2. Eschatology of Man's
have
this
special
l(7
x*P !
jta
^
x
s
® °v
and the Problem of the Present Realization
v
(-
7)-
1
of the Telos
Existence
It is possible t o c o m p a r e the N e w T e s t a m e n t with the writings of Philo and the Gnostics in terms of the eschatological orientation of these writings. W h e n e s c h a t o l o g y is u n d e r s t o o d as pertaining to the "last things," for e x a m p l e in the sense of Paul's e x p e c t a t i o n of the parousia or his c o n c e r n a b o u t w h a t will h a p p e n t o m a n after death, then the t e r m " e s c h a t o l o g y " points t o s o m e of the funda mental
differences b e t w e e n P h i l o , the
Gnostics, and
the
New
T e s t a m e n t . Philo, for instance, in sharp contrast t o m u c h of the N e w T e s t a m e n t , not o n l y d o e s n o t focus o n such c o n c e p t s as messiah, k i n g d o m of G o d , and n e w creation, b u t he also says v e r y little a b o u t death and what lies b e y o n d death. B u t e s c h a t o l o g y c a n also b e u n d e r s t o o d in terms of questions such as these: T o w h a t e x t e n t is the final goal of m a n realizable in his present e x i s t e n c e ? H o w m u c h of " h e a v e n " can b e e x p e r i e n c e d already in this life? I n terms of such c o n c e r n s of "realized escha t o l o g y " it is n o t difficult to see that Philo, the Gnostics, and m a n y of the N e w T e s t a m e n t writers address themselves t o v e r y similar problems. B u t our s t u d y of Philo and, m o r e briefly, of a limited n u m b e r of G n o s t i c texts, has indicated that the categories male and female in these writings are intimately related t o this question
of
escha
tological realization. Such motifs in Philo as b e c o m i n g male, b e c o m i n g o n e , and b e c o m i n g a virgin were seen t o b e directly associat ed w i t h progress in the m o r a l a n d religious life. Our s t u d y of these motifs shed n e w light o n Philo's understanding
of the degree t o
w h i c h the goal of m a n ' s life is already realizable in his present existence. 1
Other
2
New
T e s t a m e n t passages that should be
M a t t . 1 9 : 3 - 1 2 , 22:23-33 (and parallels); Gal. 3:28.
n o t e d are
Rev.
14:4;
M a t t . 22:30 m o s t likely
r e f l e c t s t h e belief t h a t t h e r e w i l l b e n o n e e d for p r o c r e a t i o n in t h e r e s u r r e c t i o n existence and thus no marriage
(so L u k e 2 0 : 3 6 ; cf.
Enoch
15:3-7);
t h e l e s s it is a t l e a s t p o s s i b l e t h a t t h e a s s u m p t i o n t h a t i n f o r m s that
existence
without
the
sexual
relationship,
or
even
none
this t e x t
without
is
sexual
d i f f e r e n t i a t i o n , is q u a l i t a t i v e l y s u p e r i o r t o m a n ' s p r e s e n t c o n d i t i o n a n d t h u s m o r e a p p r o p r i a t e t o t h e r e s u r r e c t i o n s t a t e . W e are r e m i n d e d of P a u l ' s oux EVI apaev x a l 0vjXu in G a l . 2
3:28.
I t is t o b e n o t e d , h o w e v e r , t h a t in a g r e a t m a n y p a s s a g e s w h e r e he refers
FINAL OBSERVATIONS AND SUGGESTED CORRELATIONS
79
One passage in particular, Gal. 3:26-28, suggests that in the N e w Testament
the
categories male a n d female m a y also b e closely
related t o the question of eschatological realization. IlavTec yap yap
uiol
6eou
eo"re Side ttjc tuo-tewc ev
XpicrTW T ^ a o u - o a o i
e i c X p i t T T O v e(3aTCTio-07)Te, X p i a T o v eveSuaatrOe. o u x evi T o u S a i o c
ouSe " E A A t j v , o u x
evi
SouXoc ouSe eAeuOepoc, oux
evi
apaev
xal
6yjXu- 7ravT£C y a p ufjieic e i c eo"re ev X p i a x w Tyjctou.
It is possible t o interpret the phrase oux stands in such sharp c o n t r a s t relationship coram
between
men
and
evi apcrev
xal OyjAu, w h i c h
t o m o s t of Paul's sayings o n the w o m e n , as
descriptive
deo or in the life t o c o m e , a n d thus w i t h o u t
of
man
immediate
practical i m p l i c a t i o n s in the Church. In this sense it c o u l d b e c o n sidered a k i n d of t h e o l o g i c a l anticipation of the future w h e n Christ returns a n d the n e w age is fully ushered in. Gal. 3:28, h o w e v e r , n o t o n l y m e n t i o n s m a l e a n d female b u t also J e w a n d Gentile, slave a n d free. In these instances it is clear that a radical c h a n g e already has b e e n effected, n o t just in principle a n d in anticipation of the future w h e n r e d e m p t i o n shall b e fully realized, b u t right here a n d n o w . J e w a n d Gentile are still distinct, b u t their u n i t y is manifested in the Church. L i k e w i s e , a l t h o u g h Paul k n e w that slave and free were n o t the same, he r e c o g n i z e d that in the Church t h e y h a d b e c o m e one in Christ.
Presumably they
were
b a p t i z e d with the same b a p t i s m and p a r t o o k of the same b r e a d a n d wine at the L o r d ' s Supper. B u t b o t h J e w a n d Gentile a n d slave a n d free are m e n t i o n e d in Gal. 3:28 in direct c o n j u n c t i o n with m a l e
t o g r o w t h in t h e m o r a l a n d s p i r i t u a l life, P h i l o m a k e s little, if a n y , use of t h e c a t e g o r i e s m a l e a n d f e m a l e . A s V S l k e r , Fortschritt,
pp. 279-317, points out,
a l t h o u g h P h i l o v i e w s t h e v i s i o n of G o d (9ecopta 9eou or opaaic; 6eou) as t h e u l t i m a t e g o a l of m a n ' s m o r a l a n d religious s t r i v i n g , n o n e t h e l e s s h e u s u a l l y d e a l s w i t h t h e q u e s t i o n of p r e s e n t r e a l i z a t i o n in t e r m s of s u c h rubrics as u . £ T p i c o 7 r a 6 £ i a a n d a7ta0eia. H e is n o t c o m p l e t e l y c o n s i s t e n t in his u s e of t h e s e t e r m s , h o w e v e r . I n a n u m b e r of t e x t s h e a r g u e s t h a t t h e g o a l of t h e man
is c o m p l e t e f r e e d o m f r o m p a s s i o n
(dbrdOeia). M o s e s , for e x a m p l e ,
n o t satisfied w i t h t h e m e r e m o d e r a t i o n of p a s s i o n
wise was
(|j.Expi(i>7Ta0£ia) b u t o n l y
w i t h c o m p l e t e f r e e d o m f r o m p a s s i o n ( L e g . A l l . I l l : 1 2 9 ) . T h i s is a l w a y s t h e g o a l of t h e w i s e m a n , t h e p e r f e c t m a n ( L e g . A l l . I l l : 1 3 1 , V i t . M o s . I I : 6 8 - 6 9 ; see V o l k e r , p p . 1 2 6 - 3 4 , 262 f f . ) . B u t P h i l o also f r e q u e n t l y e x t o l s t h e v a l u e of u.£Tpico7rd6eia
(See references in V o l k e r , p p .
134
ff.,
266-68),
a n d in A b r .
257
h e e v e n a r g u e s for its s u p e r i o r i t y o v e r d 7 r d 6 s i a . A b r a h a m is p r a i s e d for s h o w ing n e i t h e r e x c e s s i v e grief n o r , o n t h e o t h e r h a n d , i n d i f f e r e n c e t h e d e a t h of his wife
(see V o l k e r , p p . 1 3 1 ff.,
for a d i s c u s s i o n
p a s s a g e s in t h e w r i t i n g s of t h e G r e e k p h i l o s o p h e r s ) .
( a 7 i d 6 £ i a ) at of p a r a l l e l
CONCLUSION
8o 1
a n d f e m a l e . T h i s fact alone suggests c a u t i o n in maintaining
too
q u i c k l y that the male-female clause is v a l i d o n l y coram deo o r in the age t o c o m e a n d is t h u s of n o practical significance for the present. Gal. 3:28, h o w e v e r , is o n l y o n e of a n u m b e r of N e w T e s t a m e n t passages in w h i c h the categories m a l e a n d female are related t o the p r o b l e m of e s c h a t o l o g i c a l realization. If this s t u d y were t o b e p u s h e d further, not o n l y w o u l d Gal. 3:28 h a v e t o b e e x a m i n e d m o r e care fully, b u t such t e x t s as I Cor. 1 1 : 1 1 ; Matt. 19:3-12, 22:30 (and p a r a l l e l s ) ; a n d I Cor. 7 w o u l d also n e e d t o b e t a k e n i n t o c o n s i d e r ation. I n e a c h of these instances a closer s t u d y o f the male-female t e r m i n o l o g y c o u l d v e r y well p r o v i d e n e w insight into the p r o b l e m of e s c h a t o l o g i c a l realization. I n c o n c l u s i o n , then, it w o u l d seem that the presence or absence of a futurist e s c h a t o l o g y m a y b e of less significance in c o m i n g t o grips with the real c o n c e r n s of Philo, the Gnostics, C o n t e m p o r a r y J u d a i s m , a n d the N e w T e s t a m e n t t h a n the t w o o t h e r factors w e h a v e just considered, n a m e l y the evaluation of the c r e a t e d w o r l d reflected in these writings a n d the degree t o w h i c h the TEXO? of m a n ' s existence is realizable already in this present life. In b o t h instances further s t u d y of the use of the categories m a l e a n d female seems likely t o b e m o s t rewarding. 1
In I Cor. 1 2 : 1 3 ,
male-female
a
clause.
p a s s a g e r o u g h l y p a r a l l e l t o G a l . 3:28, But
p r o b l e m s h e f a c e d in t h e I
Cor. 14:34-36).
we
find
good
reason
Corinthian church
Likewise,
for
(cf.
this in
esp.
Paul omits the the
particular
I Cor. 1 1 : 2 - 1 6
Col. 3 : 1 1 constitutes a parallel to G a l .
a n d here t o o t h e m a l e - f e m a l e
clause
is o m i t t e d
in t h e
best
and 3:28,
manuscripts.
B u t it m a y w e l l b e t h a t in his o p p o s i t i o n t o c e r t a i n h e r e t i c a l i d e a s in
the
C o l o s s i a n c h u r c h , P a u l (or t h e P a u l i n i s t a u t h o r ) felt it wise t o o m i t t h e m a l e f e m a l e c l a u s e , k n o w i n g h o w this m o t i f c o u l d b e e x p l o i t e d a m o n g t h o s e " G n o s t i c " tendencies.
For background
material
relative
to this
see G . B o r n k a m m , " D i e H a r e s i e d e s K o l o s s e r b r i e f e s , " Das Ende
pp. 139-56-
des
with
question, Gesetzes,
APPENDIXES APPENDIX A THE
RELATIONSHIP
AND
MAN One
BETWEEN
DE
O P I F I C I O MTJNDI
LEGUM A L L E G O R I A IN R E F E R E N C E TO T H E C R E A T E D A F T E R T H E IMAGE OF G O D
of the c o m p l i c a t i n g factors in a n y analysis of O p . M u n d .
stems from the difficulties i n v o l v e d in relating this writing t o L e g . All.
B e c a u s e of the c o m p l e x and frequently s o m e w h a t o b s c u r e
allegorizing
in
L e g . A l l . , where incongruities h a v e
shown
up,
whether apparent or real, it has s e e m e d m e t h o d o l o g i c a l l y c o r r e c t to g i v e preference t o O p . M u n d . a n d other of P h i l o ' s less allegorical writings. Leg. A l l . 1131 ff. a n d I I : 4, in particular, are n o t o r i o u s l y difficult to h a r m o n i z e with the rest of P h i l o ' s writings. I n L e g . A l l .
1:32,
for e x a m p l e , Philo refers t o G o d ' s breathing i n t o the earthly m a n , i.e.
the vouc; fzutSriQ. It w o u l d appear that this act of d i v i n e in
spiration is e q u i v a l e n t t o w h a t P h i l o elsewhere describes as m a n ' s creation after the i m a g e of G o d . T h i s is the p a t t e r n w e n o t e d in O p . M u n d . B u t in Leg. All. 1:33
P h i l o contrasts the earthly m i n d
w i t h the m i n d c r e a t e d after the i m a g e of G o d in such a w a y that it is e x t r e m e l y difficult t o m a k e such an identification. Likewise, in Leg. A l l . I I : 4 ff. P h i l o speaks of s e n s e - p e r c e p t i o n a n d the passions as b e i n g helpers of a n d also y o u n g e r t h a n
(vewTepoi) the ruling
p a r t of the soul. B u t this ruling p a r t of the soul appears t o b e e q u a t ed n o t with the m a n after the i m a g e of G o d b u t rather with the m o u l d e d earthly m i n d ! 1
As
"men"
has in
already
been
Philo—the
1
noted,
m a n after
the the
problem image
of
correlating
the
of G o d , t h e e a r t h l y
various
man,
the
g e n e r i c m a n , etc.—is e x t r e m e l y c o m p l e x . L e g . A l l . 1 : 3 1 ff. a n d I I : 4 ff.
are
b y n o m e a n s t h e o n l y o b s c u r e p a s s a g e s . I n Q u a e s t . in G e n . 1 : 9 3 , for e x a m p l e , Philo writes fragment)
that
even
"the heavenly
is a m i x t u r e c o n s i s t i n g
man
(6 oupaviot; avGpcoreo; in G r e e k
of s o u l a n d b o d y ; a n d
f r o m his
birth
u n t i l h i s e n d h e is n o t h i n g else t h a n a c o r p s e - b e a r e r . " T h i s c a n s c a r c e l y be reconciled
with
what
Philo
elsewhere
says
about
t a k e a n o t h e r e x a m p l e , i n Q u a e s t . in G e n . 1:8,
the
heavenly
man!
14 Philo m a i n t a i n s that
To it
w a s t h e m o u l d e d m a n w h o w a s p l a c e d in P a r a d i s e t o w o r k a n d g u a r d it," w h e r e a s in L e g . A l l . 1 : 5 3 , a l t h o u g h b o t h m e n are s a i d t o h a v e b e e n p l a c e d in
A L G H J , III
6
APPENDIXES
82
Nonetheless, in o p p o s i t i o n t o m a j o r interpreters of P h i l o w h o e q u a t e the m a n after the i m a g e of G o d in L e g . A l l . 1:31 ff. with the idea of m a n ,
1
a n d in spite of the specific difficulties already
m e n t i o n e d , the possibility s h o u l d b e left o p e n that in L e g . A l l . the m a n after the i m a g e of G o d is equivalent t o the higher n o u s in m a n . V a r i o u s t e x t s t h r o u g h o u t L e g . A l l . offer c o n s i d e r a b l e s u p p o r t for such an interpretation. 1. T h e h e a v e n l y m a n in Leg. A l l . is frequently referred to as nous. N o t e , for e x a m p l e , in 1142, the e x p r e s s i o n : 6 . . . xa-ra TTJV eixova yeyovwc; xal TTJV t8£av voug. See also 1:33, 88, 90. A l t h o u g h it is p r o b a b l e that ELXWV a n d ISsa are e q u i v a l e n t terms in 1:42, it is at least possible that Philo m e a n s elxwv to refer t o the L o g o s , a c c o r d i n g to
his usual practice, a n d [Sea to the idea of m a n . W h e n Philo
w a n t s to refer to the L o g o s b y m e a n s of the t e r m ISea, he usually a d d s a modifier, for e x a m p l e , [81a [Slcov ZU7Z0C
M u n d . 25] ) or Y) ipx^
>
^
a
(Migr. A b r . 103, [ O p .
(Spec. L e g . 111:207, M u t . N o m . 125,
et a l . ) . 2. In L e g . A l l . 111:95-96 P h i l o refers to " a f o r m w h i c h G o d has s t a m p e d o n the soul as o n a tested c o i n . " This f o r m
(ayri\La.) or
impression (xapax-7]p) is the L o g o s , w h i c h is b o t h the i m a g e of G o d a n d the pattern for further creations. B u t P h i l o ' s p r o o f t e x t is precisely G e n . 1:27! T h u s it is clear that in at least o n e passage in Leg.
A l l . the m a n created after the i m a g e of G o d is part of the soul
of m a n . 3. In v i e w of P h i l o ' s soteriological orientation, it is impossible to understand w h y he should write so e x t e n s i v e l y a b o u t the h e a v e n l y m a n w h o was created after the i m a g e of G o d if this figure is s i m p l y the formal c o n c e p t of the idea of m a n a n d n o t s o m e h o w part of P a r a d i s e , he a r g u e s t h a t it is o n l y t h e m a n m a d e after t h e i m a g e of G o d w h o w a s a p p o i n t e d tiller a n d g u a r d i a n . O r a g a i n , in L e g . A l l . I :go et al. A d a m s y m b o l i z e s " t h e e a r t h l y a n d p e r i s h a b l e m i n d , " w h e r e a s in O p . M u n d . 1 3 6 ff. A d a m is t h e first a c t u a l m a n , a c o m p o s i t e c r e a t u r e of b o d y a n d r a t i o n a l s o u l ( I n L e g . A l l . 1 1 : 1 3 , h o w e v e r , A d a m is also a p p a r e n t l y i n t e r p r e t e d as t h e first a c t u a l m a n ) . I n v i e w of s u c h v a r i a t i o n s as t h e s e , it w o u l d s e e m q u i t e u n w a r r a n t e d t o b a s e a n y i n t e r p r e t a t i o n of P h i l o o n o n e o r t w o o b s c u r e p a s s a g e s t h a t c o n t r a d i c t w h a t h e a p p a r e n t l y s a y s in e v e r y o t h e r i n s t a n c e . 1
S e e , for e x a m p l e , D r u m m o n d , 307, n o t e 6 4 ; Jervell, p p . 6 2 - 6 3 , pp. 128 ff., w h e r e t h e m a n after i n t e r p r e t e d in a G n o s t i c - m y s t e r y w i t h t h e i d e a of m a n .
Philo Judaeus, I I , 2 3 4 ; W o l f s o n , Philo, I , n o t e 1 3 6 . See also P a s c h e r , Konigsweg, t h e i m a g e of G o d in L e g . A l l . 1 : 3 1 ff. is religion f r a m e w o r k a n d is n o t e q u a t e d
APPENDIX B
83
actual empirical m a n . T h i s is especially true of L e g . All., where the soteriological emphasis is far m o r e o b v i o u s than in such a writing as O p . M u n d .
APPENDIX B T H E USE OF T H E T E R M A N D R O G Y N O U S IN R E F E R E N C E T O T H E G E N E R I C M A N O F L E G U M A L L E G O R I A I I : 13 AND The
term
D E O P I F I C I O M U N D I 76
ivSpoyuvoc; can
hermaphrodite
mean:
(1)
a
man-woman,
(2) a w o m a n i s h or effeminate m a n
i.e.
a
(3) o n e w h o
s u b m i t s t o unnatural lusts (4) o n e w h o practices s o d o m y , or allows it to b e p r a c t i c e d o n h i m , a s o d o m i t e ( L i d d e l l - S c o t t , s.v.). T h e best k n o w n o c c u r r e n c e of the w o r d in ancient literature is in P l a t o ' s Symposium
(189C-193D), the passage where Aristophanes tries t o
explain the m e a n i n g of epcoc; b y m e a n s of the m y t h of the
an
d r o g y n o u s m a n . After describing the m y t h in considerable detail, Aristophanes explains that this third genus of m a n , the a n d r o g y n o u s (the other t w o are the pure m a l e and the pure female), n o longer exists b u t
remains
o n l y as a n a m e of r e p r o a c h
(6vei8ei
ovocfia). In V i t . Cont. 57-63 Philo refers specifically to P l a t o ' s m y t h of the a n d r o g y n o u s m a n . H e c o n c l u d e s his discussion t h u s : eOTocpdcycoya yap TauTaTCOCVTOC,Suvafieva TTJ
xoavoTYjxi. xrjc; £7uvoioc^
xcx dixa SeXEa^eiv
wv zy. TOXXOU TOU TCpiovro^ ot Mcouffsco^ yvwpijxoi, [i.e[xa0y)xoT£^ iv. 7tpd>Tr)c;
yjXixtac; Ipav aXTjBetai;, xaxacppovoijo'i.v
dcve£<x7t<xT7]T0i SL-OCTEXOUVTEI;.
There are eight passages in Philo where the term dvSpoyuvoc; is u s e d ; appev60Y)Xuc; does n o t appear at all (Index
Leisegang,
s.v.).
A s in the L X X , where civSpoyuvog occurs t w i c e ( P r o v e r b s 18:8 and 19:15), wherever the term is f o u n d in Philo, it is used in a d e c i d e d l y p e j o r a t i v e sense. In each instance Philo is sharply critical of the person or practice that is d e s c r i b e d b y the term dvSpoywog related w o r d yuvavSpoc; o c c u r s in three passages—Virt.
(the
21, R e r .
D i v . Her. 274, Sacr. A . C. 100 —and in each case is also used in a p e j o r a t i v e sense). In m o s t of the instances where Philo uses dvSpoyuvoc;, h e is c o n d e m n i n g effeminacy and various t y p e s of h o m o sexuality. T h e a b o v e e v i d e n c e is largely irrelevant to the question of the b i s e x u a l i t y of the m a n created after the i m a g e of G o d . A negative
8
APPENDIXES
4
result o n this issue was arrived at a b o v e o n quite different g r o u n d s . What
this e v i d e n c e d o e s indicate,
h o w e v e r , is that
the
term
" a n d r o g y n o u s " —especially w h e n scholars simultaneously use it in such a c o n t e x t as that of the a n d r o g y n o u s A n t h r o p o s figure of the Poimandres—is n o t e v e n well applied t o the generic m a n of Leg. All.
I I : 13 and O p . M u n d . 76. It is unsuitable, n o t o n l y because it
carries with it far t o o m a n y p u r e l y m y t h o l o g i c a l c o n n o t a t i o n s b u t also because of the universally p e j o i a t i v e usage of its Greek e q u i v alent in Philo's writings.
APPENDIX C ADDITIONAL NOTES ON
PHILO'S
U N D E R S T A N D I N G OF T H E
SOUL
1. W h e r e v e r Philo has in m i n d the c o m p o s i t i o n of the soul, he adheres consistently to a t w o - f o l d division. B u t he usually presents a tri-partite division w h e n he refers to the soul's functions.
For
e x a m p l e , in Leg. A l l . I l l : 115 he lists the three parts of the soul as the reasoning part (Xoyi.o-Ti.x6v), the high-spirited part (0uu.tx6v), and the seat of desire (ETUGUU^TIXOV), a s c h e m a w h i c h is t a k e n from Plato Leg.
(Phaedrus
246 ft.; Timaeus
69C; Republic
439D. See also
A l l . 1:70, Conf. L i n g . 21, Migr. A b r . 66-67, Spec. Leg. I V : 9 2 ,
Virt. 13). In R e r . D i v . H e r . 225 Philo again m e n t i o n s that the soul is tri-partite, but this time adds that each of the three parts is d i v i d e d into t w o , thus m a k i n g six parts in all. H e does n o t specify what these six parts are. In o n e passage he introduces an Aristotelian division, listing the three parts of the soul as the nutritive (0pe7mx6v) the
sense-perceptive
(ato-6rrux6v),
and
the
rational
(Xoytxov).
D r u m m o n d , I, 318-20, in a clear a n d concise discussion of the w h o l e p r o b l e m , refers
to the
"strange c o n f u s i o n " into which Philo is
driven a n d c o n c l u d e s that these references " s e r v e t o illustrate the character of Philo's eclecticism, which readily appropriates
what
ever seems a d a p t e d t o the subject i m m e d i a t e l y under discussion, w i t h o u t always pausing t o consider whether it can b e w o v e n i n t o the t e x t u r e of a consistent philosophical s y s t e m . " In Plant. 45 Philo refers t o 6 uicroc vouc, and in Mut. N o m . 30-32 he speaks of the soul of the b a d m a n (yj '\>uyr\ TOU cpauXou), the m i d d l e soul (yj (iio-y)
([at
^u}(al TWV] dyaOwv xal crocpcov). These expressions, w h i c h o c c u r
APPENDIX C within
a c o n t e x t of ethical
85
discussion, are likewise difficult
to
correlate w i t h P h i l o ' s m o r e usual division of the soul into rational a n d irrational parts (see also L e g . A l l . 1:95). 2. There is s o m e a m b i g u i t y in Philo's writings as t o
whether
m a n ' s m i n d or rational soul is material or immaterial.
Interpreters
of P h i l o h a v e t a k e n o p p o s i t e positions o n this p o i n t ;
nonetheless
the weight o f e v i d e n c e supports the v i e w that Philo b e l i e v e d the rational soul to b e immaterial. T h u s , in S o m . 1130 he clearly states t h a t w e m u s t h o l d the d o m i n a n t m i n d in m a n t o b e n o b o d y b u t i n c o r p o r e a l (00 trtofxa, aawjia-rov). T h e phrase oux depa xwoufjisvov, used t o qualify 7rveu(i.a in D e t . P o t . Ins. 83, w o u l d also appear t o b e u n a m b i g u o u s l y in favor of an immaterial
v i e w of the soul.
In
Plant. 18 Philo specifically repudiates a material v i e w of the soul w h e n he writes: N o w while others, b y asserting that our human mind is a particle ((xotpa) of the ethereal substance, have claimed for man a kinship with the upper air; our great Moses likened the fahion of the reason able soul to no created thing (ou&vi. TUV yeyovo-rcov), but averred it to be a genuine coinage of that divine and invisible spirit, signed and impressed bv the seal of God, the stamp of which is the eternal Logos. F o r an extensive discussion of P h i l o ' s views o n the nature of the soul, see D r u m m o n d , I, 326-35. D r u m m o n d specifically deals with those passages that h a v e b e e n taken t o support the interpretation that P h i l o held the rational soul t o b e material. M u c h of the c o n fusion stems from the fact t h a t m a n y interpreters h a v e failed t o understand
Philo's
different
usages
of
the
terms
vou<;
and
3. A l t h o u g h in m o s t cases Philo speaks as if the h u m a n soul c o m e s into existence w h e n G o d breathes into each individual
the
breath of life, there is a s e c o n d strand in his thinking that emphasizes the earlier creation or pre-existence of the soul. " T h e
universe,"
P h i l o argues, " m u s t needs b e filled t h r o u g h a n d t h r o u g h w i t h life," a n d each part of the universe has those forms of life w h i c h are appropriate t o it. Just as the earth has creatures of the land, and the sea a n d rivers those that live in water, so also there are creatures of the air, the invisible souls that can b e a p p r e h e n d e d o n l y b y the m i n d (Gig. 6-7, 9). T h e s e souls w h i c h fly a n d h o v e r in the air are called angels b y Moses b u t d e m o n s or spirits b y the p h i l o s o p h e r s (Gig. 6). T h e y are equal t o the stars in n u m b e r
( S o m . 11138).
APPENDIXES
86
Of this great multitude of souls s o m e descended i n t o b o d i e s while others never left the h e a v e n l y region, their native land (Conf. L i n g . 77-82, 176-77; Gig. 1 2 - 1 3 ; Plant. 14; S o m . 1:133 ff., 180).
Philo
explains the reason for this in several slightly different w a y s . In o n e case the souls that d e s c e n d e d are said t o h a v e h a d
"earthward
tendencies and material t a s t e s " ( S o m . 1:138) a n d t o have felt a c r a v i n g after the things of the earth ( S o m . 1:140). In
another
passage it w o u l d appear that the descent into the b o d y w a s s i m p l y for the sake of gaining a certain k n o w l e d g e of the material w o r l d . These souls are represented b y such figures as A b r a h a m , J a c o b , and Moses. " T h e i r w a y is t o visit earthly nature as m e n w h o travel a b r o a d t o see a n d learn. . . . W h e n t h e y h a v e s t a y e d awhile in their bodies, and beheld t h r o u g h t h e m all that sense and m o r t a l i t y has t o s h o w , t h e y m a k e their w a y b a c k to the place from w h i c h t h e y set o u t at the first" (Conf. Ling. 77-82). A s t o the souls that never d e s c e n d e d i n t o bodies, Philo s i m p l y says that these were of such p u r i t y and excellence that t h e y never felt a craving after the things of the earth ( S o m . 1:140), or that because t h e y were e n d o w e d with a "diviner c o n s t i t u t i o n " t h e y h a d n o regard for a n y earthly quarter (Plant. 14). Of the souls that d e s c e n d e d into b o d i e s s o m e c a m e t o be in creasingly swallowed u p b y the cares a n d c o n c e r n s of the material w o r l d a n d thus a b a n d o n e d themselves t o " t h e unstable things of c h a n c e " (Gig. 13-16) and the sphere of "endless calamities" (Conf. Ling. 176-77). B u t others, n a m e l y the souls of those w h o sought wisdom
and
gave
themselves
to
genuine
philosophy,
"soared
u p w a r d s b a c k t o the place from w h e n c e t h e y c a m e " (Gig. 13). These souls of the wise were b u t sojourners a n d strangers in a foreign c o u n t r y , i.e. the b o d y . T h e h e a v e n l y region is their native land
(Conf. Ling. 77-82; S o m . I : i 8 o f f . ; Quaest. in Gen. I l l : 10,
45; I V : 74). Philo sees J a c o b ' s vision of the ladder reaching u p t o h e a v e n with the angels of G o d ascending and descending o n it as a picture of the descent a n d ascent of souls ( S o m . 1:133 f f . ) . P h i l o ' s references t o the pre-existence of souls appear t o c o n stitute a s e c o n d strand in his thinking w h i c h has
never
been
h a r m o n i z e d with the far m o r e usual Genesis a c c o u n t of
man's
creation.
Philo
As Drummond
points
out
(II,
277),
although
a c c e p t s the P l a t o n i c d o c t r i n e of the pre-existence of the soul, this doctrine " t o t a l l y disappears . . . w h e n he speaks of the creation of m a n , and the c o m m u n i c a t i o n t o h i m of the divine Spirit." In this
8
APPENDIX D
7
latter case Philo " p r o c e e d s as t h o u g h each m a n b e g a n his mental history w i t h his b i r t h . " 4. A l t h o u g h Philo writes e x t e n s i v e l y a b o u t the soul and the t w o fold nature of man, he is not unaware of the difficulty of the subject. In several passages he professes an inability truly t o k n o w the nature of m a n ' s soul. Thus, for e x a m p l e , in Mut. N o m . 10 he writes: " A n d w h y s h o u l d w e w o n d e r that the E x i s t e n t
(TO 6V)
c a n n o t b e a p p r e h e n d e d b y m e n w h e n e v e n the m i n d in each of us is u n k n o w n t o us ? F o r w h o k n o w s the essential nature of the soul, t h a t u n c e r t a i n t y that has b r e d numberless c o n t e n t i o n s a m o n g the sophists w h o p r o p o u n d opinions c o n t r a r y t o each other or e v e n t o t a l l y and generically o p p o s e d ? " In Cher. 65 Philo chides the m i n d , filled with pride, t h a t fails t o recognize its
dependence
on G o d , for the m i n d " c a n n o t possess even itself securely, or e v e n k n o w w h a t its o w n real being i s . " See also Leg. A l l . 1:91, S o m . 1:30.
APPENDIX D A D D I T I O N A L NOTES ON PHILO'S USE OF A N D R O G Y N O U S M A N MOTIF A N D HIS
THE
ACCOUNT
OF T H E C R E A T I O N OF W O M A N 1. Several
factors
may
help
explain
Philo's
use
of
the
a n d r o g y n o u s m a n m o t i f in O p . Mund. 151-52 in spite of his scornful ridicule in Vit. Cont. 63 of P l a t o ' s m y t h of the a n d r o g y n o u s m a n . In the first place, the interpretation of the Genesis creation nar ratives in terms of the a n d r o g y n o u s m a n m o t i f w a s
apparently
widespread in Philo's d a y , b o t h a m o n g the r a b b i s and in various 1
G n o s t i c circles. T h u s Philo m a y well h a v e m a d e use of a source t h a t c o n t a i n e d the m o t i f of the a n d r o g y n o u s primal m a n w i t h o u t directly associating this t h e m e with the m y t h of the a n d r o g y n o u s 2
m a n as f o u n d in P l a t o ' s Symposium.
In the s e c o n d place, the ele
m e n t s of the m y t h w h i c h are f o u n d in O p . M u n d . 151-52 are quite c o m p a t i b l e with P h i l o ' s o w n favorite t h e m e of u n i t y vs. duality and m a k e it possible for Philo t o relate this t h e m e t o t h e Genesis creation narrative. Finally, this entire section of O p . Mund. (136-70) contains a n u m b e r of motifs that c a n o n l y with difficulty b e related 1
2
See references a n d d i s c u s s i o n in J e r v e l l , p p .
S e e D o d d , Bible and Greeks, p p . 1 5 8 - 5 9 , b e t w e e n O p . M u n d . 1 5 1 ff. a n d P o i m a n d r e s .
for
107-12,
161-65.
a d i s c u s s i o n of
parallels
APPENDIXES
88
t o the rest of Philo's w r i t i n g s .
1
It w o u l d thus appear that he has
m a d e use of certain c o n t e m p o r a r y interpretations of the creation a n d fall of m a n w i t h o u t in e v e r y case recognizing the i n c o m p a t i b i l i t y of s o m e of this material w i t h his writings as a w h o l e . B u t Philo is m a i n l y interested in the Genesis a c c o u n t o f the creation and fall of m a n because of w h a t it has t o say a b o u t c o n t e m p o r a r y m a n . T h u s to require that O p . M u n d . 151-52 b e c o m p l e t e l y c o m p a t i b l e with w h a t Philo elsewhere says a b o u t the origin of actual empirical m a n is to misunderstand his purpose. 2. Philo gives n o one answer as t o h o w a n d w h e n the first w o m a n was created, n o r d o e s he appear t o be particularly interested in this question. If O p . M u n d . 151-52 is interpreted in terms of the an d r o g y n o u s m a n motif, then w o m a n c a m e into existence w h e n the original bisexual m a n , w h o was o n e , b e c a m e t w o , a m a l e and a female. I n L e g . A l l . 11:19-52 Philo allegorizes the a c c o u n t of the creation of w o m a n in such a w a y that w o u l d b e consistent with the a n d r o g y n o u s primal m a n m o t i f (cf. especially 24, 40, 44), b u t makes it quite clear in I I : 19 that he considers the narrative in its literal form m y t h i c a l . O p . M u n d . 76, L e g . A l l . I I : 13, and Rer. D i v . Her. 164 h a v e frequently been interpreted in terms of the a n d r o g y n o u s m a n motif, b u t as w a s seen in Chapter I I , these passages are best u n d e r s t o o d in reference t o the philosophical c o n c e p t of p o t e n t i a l i t y a n d actuality. Thus in o n e instance the generic earthly m a n unites with the generic h e a v e n l y m a n t o form m a n , in a n o t h e r instance t o f o r m w o m a n . F u r t h e r m o r e , Philo repeatedly insists that expressions of t i m e in the creation narrative i m p l y order, n o t c h r o n o l o g i c a l sequence, since all things c a m e into existence s i m u l t a n e o u s l y .
2
Thus
logically it is difficult to see h o w the a n d r o g y n o u s m a n motif, if u n d e r s t o o d literally, c o u l d fit into Philo's s c h e m a in O p . M u n d . , w h i c h , it must b e r e m e m b e r e d , is the o n e writing that deals systemati cally with the creation of the w o r l d . M u c h of the confusion in inter preting Philo w o u l d appear t o stem from the failure to distinguish b e t w e e n his basic t h e o l o g i c a l - p h i l o s o p h i c a l analysis of creation a n d the
m y t h o l o g i c a l - a l l e g o r i c a l framework
he
frequently
uses
for
explaining these c o n c e p t s . One m u s t n o t lose sight of the fact t h a t Philo is an exegete of Scripture, and the Genesis narratives are t h e g i v e n w h i c h is his starting p o i n t .
1
See
above,
Chap. II,
C,
1.
2
See
above,
Chap. II,
B,
2, c.
APPENDIX E
8
9
APPENDIX E ADDITIONAL
NOTES ON PHILO'S A T T I T U D E
T O W A R D S MAN'S I R R A T I O N A L SOUL AND 1. Positive
THE CREATED
Orientation
towards Man's
WORLD
Lower Nature
and the
Created
World A l t h o u g h the categorical qualitative distinction between G o d and the c r e a t e d w o r l d is p r e s u p p o s e d t h r o u g h o u t his writings, n o n e t h e less P h i l o n o t infrequently emphasizes that the w o r l d was m a d e b y G o d and therefore is g o o d and beautiful. Such a positive e v a l u a t i o n of the
created w o r l d is seen particularly
in O p . Mund., where
P h i l o ' s descriptions of the h a n d i w o r k o f nature and o f the h a r m o n y , s y m m e t r y , and b e a u t y of the created w o r l d are almost p o e t i c in q u a l i t y a n d are reminiscent of s o m e of the O l d T e s t a m e n t P s a l m s .
1
Similarly in Spec. L e g . Philo shows particular sensitivity t o the b e a u t y of the created w o r l d . Such a phrase as " t h e artist nature in 2
her creative w o r k " is n o t atypical of this treatise. I n d e e d , in Spec. Leg. 1:97 Philo emphasizes that the high priest of the Jews does not offer prayers and sacrifices just for his o w n kinsmen and fellow3
c o u n t r y m e n as d o the priests of other n a t i o n s , b u t also gives thanks for the w h o l e h u m a n race a n d for the various parts of creation. " F o r he holds the w o r l d t o b e , as in v e r y truth it is, his n a t i v e c o u n t r y . " As was n o t e d in Chapter I I , the Trpw-o? av0pco7ro<; of O p . M u n d . 136 ff. is described as beautiful and g o o d in each part of his being, in b o t h soul and b o d y . F u r t h e r m o r e ,
it w o u l d appear from O p .
M u n d . 72-75 that G o d did n o t e m p l o y his p o w e r s (Suvafzsii;) and fellow-workers
((rvvspyoi) in the creation of m a n s i m p l y because
m a n has a b o d y , for G o d created the animals and all other parts of the material w o r l d b y himself. Possessing n o rational
faculty,
animals partake of neither virtue n o r v i c e , for as Philo p o i n t s out in O p . M u n d . 73, &
KOLXICCC,
8k
xat aps-riji; a>? av olxot; vouc; xoci Aoyo?,
7T£
1
For example,
Mund. 2
3
77-78,
compare
114-16, 133.
Spec. Leg. I l l : i o 8 . Cf. H e b . 5.
Op. Mund.
136-50 with Psalm
8.
See
also O p .
APPENDIXES
go
sin n o t just t o his s o m a t i c nature but t o a d i s t o r t e d b e t w e e n the higher a n d l o w e r parts of his b e i n g .
relationship
1
P h i l o likewise c a n s p e a k p o s i t i v e l y of aio-0Y)o-ic, h o l d i n g it t o b e a f a c u l t y t h a t is neither g o o d n o r b a d in itself b u t g o o d or b a d o n l y as it is f o u n d in the wise m a n or the fool, i.e. o n l y as it is e m p l o y e d 2
for g o o d or b a d p u r p o s e s . Sense-perception is indispensable in the acquisition of k n o w l e d g e of b o d i l y o b j e c t s . I n d e e d , apart from its help, Philo maintains, the vouc is TU9A0C, . . . aSuvorroc ovtcoc,
r)iuau
3
tyi>yr\c, TeAeiac. Just as A d a m was i n c o m p l e t e apart from E v e , so the m i n d , if it were to gain k n o w l e d g e of the material w o r l d , required sense-perception.
4
Such k n o w l e d g e is a k i n d of g a t e w a y or pass
(toiAy) tic) t o the intelligible w o r l d .
5
Philo thus
understandably
refers t o the senses as Stopeal 0e!ai for w h i c h m a n o u g h t t o g i v e thanks.
6
A l t h o u g h he usually uses h i g h l y p e j o r a t i v e language in reference to 7iaOoc, particularly v]8ovy], there are a n u m b e r of passages w h e r e P h i l o speaks m o r e m o d e r a t e l y , a n d o c c a s i o n a l l y he e v e n writes in 7
praise of p a s s i o n . In a c c o r d with w h a t was p r o b a b l y a traditional usage of his d a y , he m a k e s use of P l a t o ' s parable of the charioteer to e x p l a i n health of soul as b e i n g present w h e n 6uu.6c a n d emOufiia, two
restive horses, are p r o p e r l y c o n t r o l l e d b y Aoyoc, the c h a r i o t e e r .
8
Circumcision is a s y m b o l of the excision of " e x c e s s i v e a n d super fluous pleasure,"
1
9
nonetheless pleasure in s o m e measure is necessary
T h a t G o d c r e a t e d t h e b o d y as w e l l as t h e r a t i o n a l soul is a m o t i f t h a t
is p r o m i n e n t in O p . M u n d . b u t is n o t c o n f i n e d t o t h a t w r i t i n g . Cf. R e r . D i v .
H e r . 7 3 , L e g . A l l . 111:70. 2
Leg. A l l . 1 1 1 : 6 7 .
3
Cher. 59.
4
Cher.
6
S o m . I : i 8 8 . P h i l o p r a i s e s t h e sense of s i g h t in p a r t i c u l a r , h o l d i n g it t o
be
57-64.
Cf.
Rer.
Div.
H e r . 53,
Congr.
155.
m o s t c l o s e l y r e l a t e d t o t h e r a t i o n a l s o u l a n d t h e s o u r c e of p h i l o s o p h y .
S e e Q u a e s t . in G e n . 1 1 : 3 4 ; ° p . M u n d . 5 3 , 54, 7 7 . 6
C o n g r . 96. I n L e g . A l l . 1 1 1 : 4 9 P h i l o g o e s so far as t o s a y t h a t
vouq,
w i t h o u t its p o w e r s , o n e of w h i c h is aXadrjaiQ, is f o u n d to b e n a k e d a n d n o t even existent
(yuu.v6<; xal ouSi cov eopiaxErai). See also L e g . A l l . 1 : 2 5 , 1 1 : 7 .
I t is h a r d t o see h o w t h e m i n d referred t o in t h e s e p a s s a g e s c o u l d b e t h e s a m e as t h a t w h i c h P h i l o e l s e w h e r e d e s c r i b e s as d^oaTtaajia 9ETOV. Cf. Q u a e s t . in
Gen.
111:3.
7
Cf. R e r . D i v . H e r . 1 9 ; M i g r . A b r . 1 1 9 ; V i r t . 7 5 , 1 4 4 .
8
V i r t . 1 3 . Cf. I V M a c c a b e e s 1:6 a n d 2:6 for a s i m i l a r d e s c r i p t i o n of t h e
p r o p e r r e l a t i o n s h i p b e t w e e n r e a s o n a n d t h e p a s s i o n s . R e a s o n is n o t t o t r y t o e x t i r p a t e t h e p a s s i o n s b u t is t o b e m a s t e r o v e r t h e m . See also L e g . A l l . I :
72-739
S p e c . L e g . I :g.
APPENDIX E
91
for the p r o p e r interaction of m i n d and s e n s e - p e r c e p t i o n .
1
In O p .
M u n d . i6o-63a Philo d e m o n s t r a t e s that pleasure is integral t o life itself, and in L e g . AH. 1 1 : 8 he speaks of the i m p o r t a n t role of the passions, particularly
YJSOVY], £7ii0u|i.ia, Xumr), a n d
tributing t o the p e r m a n e n c e of the r a c e .
cp6(3o<;, in
con
2
I n the texts just e x a m i n e d m a n ' s irrational soul and the material w o r l d are seen as p o t e n t i a l l y b u t not a b s o l u t e l y evil. M a n b e c o m e s i n v o l v e d in m o r a l evil n o t s i m p l y because he is aw|i.a a n d aia67]o-(.<; as well as vou<; b u t because of a distorted relationship b e t w e e n the l o w e r a n d higher parts of his being. This attitude t o w a r d s m a n and the created w o r l d is also seen in s u c h a passage as L e g . A l l . I I : i 7 , where Philo states t h a t it is necessary for a c r e a t e d b e i n g t o m a k e use of pleasure. Xcopli; ydp y]8ovv]<; ouSev ylveTai xwv Iv TW 6VY]TW yevei. T h e b a d m a n (6 (pauXoc), h o w e v e r , will use pleasure "as a perfect g o o d , " whereas the g o o d m a n (6 CT7iou8aio<;) " s i m p l y as a n e c e s s i t y . " G o d d e e m e d it proper, Philo maintains in D e t . P o t . Ins. 170-71, that the reasoning faculty in m a n s h o u l d find all of m a n ' s irrational parts clean for its use. T h e wise m a n (6 o-o<po<;) should h a v e the various senses p u r g e d and cleansed a n d under the c o n t r o l of r e a s o n .
3
T h u s it is clear that sense-perception, the b o d y , and e v e n passion, w h e n under the rightful d o m i n i o n of the m i n d , c o n t r i b u t e to m a n ' s total w e l l - b e i n g and are n o t m o r a l l y b l a m e w o r t h y . Y e t , w h e n n o t fully
subject t o m i n d , t h e y can c o m p l e t e l y thwart
the
higher
aspirations of the soul. T h e parable of the charioteer a p t l y expresses these relationships. 2. Negative Created
Orientation
towards
Man's
Lower
Nature
and
the
World
In sharp contrast t o the texts e x a m i n e d in the first section of this a p p e n d i x and far m o r e t y p i c a l of P h i l o ' s writings as a w h o l e are those passages where the created w o r l d is p o r t r a y e d as hostile a n d antithetic to the g o o d life. N o longer is a relationship of m o d e r ation t o w a r d s sense-perception, pleasure, and t h e b o d y appropriate, since these are realities evil in themselves a n d therefore t o b e shun ned entirely. T h e perfect m a n radically repudiates the 1
L e g . All. I I 7 1 - 7 2 .
2
See
3
Cf. Sacr. A . C. 1 0 5 - 1 0 6 , R e r . D i v . H e r . 42.
Appendix
F
for
Philo's
views
on
sexual
desire
and
material
procreation.
9
APPENDIXES
2
w o r l d as a sphere at e n m i t y with G o d , the place of death, c h a n g e , a n d c o r r u p t i o n . T o turn to G o d is t o flee from the w o r l d . T h a t w h i c h is in the w o r l d is n o t just a potential hindrance t o the g o o d life b u t is inherently and a c t i v e l y o p p o s e d t o all that is of G o d . G o d a n d creation are natures m u t u a l l y a n t a g o n i s t i c .
1
Man is p o r t r a y e d as a sinner n o t because he is w r o n g l y related t o the created w o r l d b u t s i m p l y b e c a u s e he is a part of that w o r l d . In a detailed description of the tabernacle and its appurtenances, Philo writes that Moses d e c i d e d t o offer a calf for the forgiveness of sins, aiviTTO[i,evo(; oti tcocvti yev7]Tcp, xolv tJ7iouSaiov f), rrapocrov 9)X6ev zlc, yevemv, tju[i,cpusi; to ajiapTaveiv ecjtlv.
2
A n essentially similar motif is present in the a c c o u n t of the fall of the 7Tpo>Toc; mQpomoq, w h i c h Philo introduces with the s t a t e m e n t : 'Etoi
8'
ouSev twv ev yeveoxi. pe(ia(.ov, V
Ta 6vY)Ta Se^eTai, £XP^) xaxo7rpayla£;
x a > L
T
°
v
Se xal
TpQ7rdt;
^P^fov
[i,£Ta[3oXat;
avayxalw?
av6pa>7tov drroXaijcrai tlvo?
( O p . M u n d . 151). This emphasis o n the
necessary
relationship b e t w e e n m a n as created a n d m o r t a l and m a n as a sinner, a l t h o u g h it p r o b a b l y can n o t b e reconciled with the preceding a c c o u n t of the n o b i l i t y of the
7rp«T0t;
avOpomoc; ( O p . M u n d . 136-50),
is nonetheless a c o m m o n motif in Philo's writings. In contrast t o God, w h o is unchangeable, e v e r y created thing must u n d e r g o change, I'Siov ydp ecrri touto auTou (Leg. A l l . I I 1 3 3 ) . Philo is particularly crwfxa,
3
severe in his denunciation of YJSOVY) and
w h i c h in a n u m b e r of passages are described as evil b y
nature. A'iab-f\c\.c, is frequently
referred
t o in highly
pejorative
terms, b u t it is never held to b e inherently or absolutely evil. Pleasure, h o w e v e r , is b a d in itself (Leg. All. I l l : 68). It is the passion par excellence ( I I I : 107); worse than the others, for t h e y all d e p e n d on pleasure ( I I I : 113). Pleasure is a harlot that appears in e x t r a v agant
guise for the sake of enticing the souls of the y o u n g . B y
her witchcrafts and sorceries she tries t o take c a p t i v e and enslave the m i n d (Sacr. A . C. 20 f f . ) . Pleasure is a foe t o sense and deserves o n l y cursing (Leg. A l l . I l l : 182, 107). It is n o t f o u n d at all in the good man (III:68).
4
T h a t Philo speaks of the b o d y in almost the same terms he uses 1
Leg. All. I l l : .
2
Vit. Mos.
Cf. P l a n t . 5 3 .
7
II:
I
4
7
.
3
S e e also L e g . A l l . I I : i 6 .
4
Cf. L e g . A l l . 11:17.
Philo speaks
of desire
(£7u9u|zia) in
t h e s a m e w a y as he d o e s of p l e a s u r e . Cf. Q u a e s t . in G e n . 1:47,
substantially 48.
APPENDIX E
93
to refer t o pleasure is n o t surprising, for the b o d y is so c l o s e l y associated with pleasure in his thinking that he c a n s w i t c h from a discussion of one to the o t h e r a n d b a c k again a l m o s t i m p e r c e p t i b l y . T h u s , in L e g . All. I l l : 6 1 - 6 8 he writes a b o u t the evil influence of pleasure, the serpent of Gen. 3. B e c a u s e the serpent is t h o r o u g h l y b a d G o d gives h i m n o o p p o r t u n i t y t o defend himself; he is " a l w a y s a n d e v e r y w h e r e g u i l t y a n d f o u l . " W i t h o u t a b r e a k (note the Sta. TOUTO) P n i l o c o n t i n u e s his a r g u m e n t in L e g . A l l . 111:69 b y referring to Gen. 38:7, where it is r e c o r d e d that G o d slew E r b e c a u s e of his wickedness. B u t Philo interprets E r as referring n o t to pleasure b u t to the b o d y , w h i c h he describes as w i c k e d , soul, a n d hostile to the m i n d ( I I I : 7 1 ) . The
1
a p l o t t e r against
the
2
sphere of m o r t a l i t y a n d c h a n g e , the sphere of the c r e a t e d
w o r l d , is for Philo the realm of avayxy), a n d is as such sharply c o n 3
trasted with G o d , w h o is a b e i n g of free will. O n l y the m i n d of m a n has r e c e i v e d from G o d the f a c u l t y of v o l u n t a r y m o v e m e n t , for it alone was j u d g e d w o r t h y of f r e e d o m .
4
T h e b o d y a n d the irrational
soul, b e i n g subject t o the p o w e r of avayxy), are t o t a l l y outside the r e a l m of freedom. O n l y as m a n forsakes w h a t is created, m o r t a l , a n d perishable will he k n o w the p r o f o u n d p e a c e a n d c a l m of the wise m a n , the o n e w h o s e m i n d is fiaxapioc, euS'aiji.tov, 6.\iiTojoQ 1
xaxcov.
5
T h e t e r m 7rovr]p6i; is p r o b a b l y t a k e n d i r e c t l y f r o m G e n . 3 8 : 7 , w h e r e it
is u s e d in reference t o E r . Cf. d i s c u s s i o n in V o l k e r , Fortschritt, All.
p. 75. Leg.
I l l : 6 9 - 7 6 c l e a r l y i l l u s t r a t e s t h e a m b i g u i t y of P h i l o ' s a t t i t u d e t o w a r d s
t h e b o d y a n d t h e m a t e r i a l w o r l d , for r i g h t in t h e m i d d l e of this
passage
w h e r e h e refers t o t h e b o d y as w i c k e d , h o s t i l e , a c o r p s e , a n d t h a t God
which
in his g o o d n e s s a n d k i n d n e s s will d e s t r o y , h e s t a t e s t h a t G o d c r e a t e d
t h e b o d y . W h i t a k e r ' s t r a n s l a t i o n of L e g . A l l . 1 1 1 : 7 0
("Nay,
b u t the b o d y
which H e m a d e and which E r represents was a corpse to begin w i t h . " See Philo
[ L . C . L . ] I [ 1 9 2 9 ] , p . 347) d o e s n o t reflect t h e t h e o l o g i c a l p r o b l e m in its
full i n t e n s i t y .
T h e G r e e k is m o r e a c c u r a t e l y r e n d e r e d : " B u t f r o m t h e b e
ginning he [ G o d ] m a d e the b o d y a corpse." 2
T h i s discussion
a b o u t t h e b o d y in L e g . A l l . 1 1 1 : 6 9 - 7 6 is in all essentials
identical with the preceding discussion a b o u t pleasure. I n d e e d , Philo con c l u d e s this section o n t h e e v i l i n f l u e n c e of t h e b o d y w i t h t h e
statement,
" W h a t a s e r p e n t d o e s to a m a n , t h a t p l e a s u r e d o e s t o t h e s o u l , a n d t h e r e f o r e the
serpent was
taken
t o represent pleasure,"
thus
indicating
that
even
w h i l e d e s c r i b i n g t h e evil effects of t h e b o d y h e still w a s t h i n k i n g in t e r m s of t h e m e a n i n g of p l e a s u r e . T h e first w o r d s of t h e s e c t i o n i m m e d i a t e l y f o l l o w i n g — " E x a c t l y , t h e n , as G o d h a s h a t e d . . . p l e a s u r e a n d t h e b o d y " — l i k e w i s e p o i n t t o t h i s s a m e close a s s o c i a t i o n writings.
:253.
3
Som. II
4
D e u s I m m . 47-48.
5
Som. 11:253,
229-30.
of p l e a s u r e a n d t h e b o d y in
Philo's
APPENDIXES
94
APPENDIX F A NOTE ON SEXUAL INTERCOURSE A N D PROCREATION IN PHILO'S W R I T I N G S E v e n t h o u g h P h i l o considers the m o s t i m p e r i o u s ((3toco-T»«oTaT7]) of
all pleasures
t o b e that
associated with sexual
intercourse,
1
nonetheless the d i v i n e c o m m a n d t o procreate is assumed t h r o u g h o u t his writings a n d marriage c a n b e described as blameless a n d w o r t h y of the highest praise. If the goal of h u s b a n d a n d wife is the p r o creation o f legitimate children a n d the p e r p e t u a t i o n
of the race,
then
unpolluted.
2
N a t u r e f o r m e d the u n i o n of m a n a n d wife for the birth of c h i l d r e n ,
3
their association is pure
and
their marriage
a n d e v e n the priest, since h e is primarily a m a n a n d o n l y s e c o n d a r i l y a priest,
necessarily o u g h t
t o feel sexual desire.
4
The
blessings
of health a n d p r o s p e r i t y w h i c h the L a w promises t o the righteous w o u l d b e of little value, Philo argues, if a m a n left b e h i n d h i m n o heirs a n d successors. T h e r e f o r e roxvTec, vofxov exuXyjpcocroutTi cpuaetoc. TOV e m
. . . o l 0epa7reuT<xl 6sou yv^tTioi
7iat,So7roiia.
5
It is clear, h o w e v e r , that P h i l o v i e w s the sexual relationship as justified o n l y w h e n there is the h o p e of legitimate offspring. H e describes as mere " p l e a s u r e - l o v e r s "
those w h o m a t e with
their
w i v e s n o t t o b e g e t children " b u t like pigs or g o a t s in quest of the e n j o y m e n t w h i c h such intercourse g i v e s . " mate for
8
Likewise, those w h o
(eruvepxeoSoci) w i t h barren w o m e n are w o r t h y of r e p r o a c h ,
in their seeking after
m e r e pleasure
creative germs w i t h deliberate p u r p o s e . " Philo
s h o w s genuine
sympathy,
"they
d e s t r o y the
pro-
7
h o w e v e r , for the
man
who
marries a w o m a n n o t k n o w i n g that she is sterile a n d later refuses t o dismiss her b e c a u s e of her childlessness. S u c h m e n deserve o u r pardon,
1
2
3
4
he writes
"for they
are
overcome b y habitual
sexual
L e g . A l l . 1 1 : 7 4 , S p e c . L e g . 1 : 9 , Q u a e s t . in G e n . 1 1 1 : 4 8 . Q u a e s t . in G e n . I V : 8 6 . A b r . 248. Spec. Leg. L.101.
5
P r a e m . P o e n . 108. Cf. E x . 2 3 : 2 6 , t h e s e c o n d p a r t of w h i c h is q u o t e d in a s l i g h t l y a l t e r e d f o r m in P r a e m . P o e n . i n . 6
Spec. Leg. I l l : i i 3 -
7
S p e c . L e g . I I I : 3 4 3 6 . A s C o l s o n p o i n t s o u t in Philo ( L . C . L . ) V I I ( 1 9 3 7 ) , p . 497, n o t e a, " P h i l o h a s n o t , n o r d o e s h e c l a i m t o h a v e , a n y b i b l i c a l a u t h o r i t y for t h e s e t h r e e s e c t i o n s . " :
APPENDIX G
95
i n t i m a c y , that m o s t imperious affair, and are unable t o free t h e m selves from the c h a r m of o l d affection t h a t has b e e n imprinted o n their souls b y l o n g c o m p a n i o n s h i p . "
1
APPENDIX G T H E E X P O S I T I O N IN C O N T R A S T TO T H E A L L E G O R Y A N D THE
QUESTIONS A N D A N S W E R S IN
RELATIONSHIP
TO T H E I R E V A L U A T I O N OF T H E C R E A T E D W O R L D In reviewing those passages in P h i l o that reflect his attitude t o w a r d s the created w o r l d , it is striking t o note that, o n the w h o l e , the Exposition
reflects a far m o r e consistently positive orientation
t o w a r d s creation t h a n d o e s the Allegory and Answers.
of the Laws or the
Questions
Especially w h e n L e g . A l l . is c o m p a r e d with O p . M u n d .
a n d S p e c . L e g . is this contrast apparent. T h e r e is little d o u b t t h a t particularly throughout
the Exposition
in Spec. Leg., b u t
also
as a whole, the actual c o n t e n t of the
Old Testament exercised greater influence o n P h i l o ' s thinking than w a s the case in Leg. A l l . a n d t h r o u g h o u t Questions
and Answers,
the Allegory.
In
the
although Philo usually includes a literal
interpretation o f each t e x t , the real thrust of the writing is f o u n d in the allegorical amplifications. In n o place in his writings, h o w e v e r , d o e s Philo c o m p l e t e l y ignore the fact that this w o r l d , including m a n ' s b o d y , is G o d ' s creation, and thus although such a writing as S p e c . Leg. shows a far m o r e appreciative awareness of the created w o r l d than d o e s Leg. A l l . , there are also in the latter writing not a few statements that are m o r e p o s i t i v e l y oriented. In those cases where Philo is interpreting specific c o m m a n d m e n t s of the L a w , his writings m o s t clearly reflect the actual c o n t e n t of the O l d Testament itself, w h i c h is certainly n o t surprising in v i e w of his insistence o n the literal v a l i d i t y of the L a w . Thus, as c a n b e seen from A p p e n d i x F, Philo's a t t i t u d e t o w a r d s marriage and sexual intercourse for the p u r p o s e of begetting legitimate children is one of a c c e p t a n c e in Spec. Leg. This stands in sharp contrast t o m u c h of w h a t w e find in Leg. All. Cf. V o l k e r , Fortschritt, 1
Spec. L e g . 1 1 1 : 3 5 .
p p . 87-89.
9
6
APPENDIXES APPENDIX H
THE
INFLUENCE
OF
HELLENISTIC
PROPHETISM
ON
PHILO'S USE OF V I R G I N T E R M I N O L O G Y IN CONNECTION WITH THE DIVINE IMPREGNATION MOTIF: A CRITICAL NOTE ON HANS LEISEGANG'S BOOK PNEUMA HAGION H a n s Leisegang, in his b o o k Pneuma
Hagion
(1922), argues that
P h i l o ' s insistence that the o n e w h o receives the divine impregnation be a virgin stems from the influence of Hellenistic
prophetism.
1
Leisegang points to the P y t h i a n oracle at Delphi, for e x a m p l e , w h o was always a virgin. A Tcvzu\j.a fxavrixov or evOouaiaaTixov issued forth from the r o c k fissure o v e r w h i c h she sat o n her tripod. T h e n as she was filled with the presence of the g o d through this 7rvsuu.a, she b e g a n t o prophesy. T h a t the basic m o t i f here is that of divine impregnation,
Leisegang maintains, is s u p p o r t e d b y Strabo's
of the w o r d SiyzoQai
in c o n n e c t i o n with this o c c u r r e n c e and
use by
Origen and J o h n C h r y s o s t o m ' s scornfully explicit descriptions of h o w the prophetess of A p o l l o sits o n her tripod a n d opens her thighs so that she is able to receive the revsufxa into her w o m b (pp. 32-34)T h e oracle of D i o n y s u s at Delphi also was a virgin, as were the maenads
of the
D i o n y s i a c religion, w h o were k n o w n for their
experiences of ecstatic frenzy w h e n filled with the presence of the g o d (p. 47). Again, argues Leisegang, all of this points t o the close relationship
between
p r o p h e t i c inspiration a n d
virginity, a n d
it
is against this b a c k g r o u n d that we must try t o u n d e r s t a n d Philo's emphasis o n the virginity of the soul that G o d impregnates. This also explains, Leisegang maintains, w h y in such a passage as
Cher.
43-52 Philo quite
unexpectedly
quotes
Jer.
3:4.
He
w a n t e d t o introduce the t e r m " v i r g i n i t y " into the discussion, a n d the reason for this " k a n n aber w o h l nur der sein, dass eben gottliche Z e u g u n g u n d Jungfraulichkeit
i m hellenistischen Vorstellen so eng
miteinander zusammengehorten, dass auch Philon in seiner Allegorie diesen Z u s a m m e n h a n g irgendwie herstellen m u s s t e " (p. 45). Leisegang's interpretation m a y be challenged at several points, h o w e v e r . First of all, it is necessary t o distinguish m o r e sharply than 1
See e s p e c i a l l y p p . 3 1 - 7 2 .
APPENDIX H
97
he does b e t w e e n the motif of divine impregnation and the m o r e inclusive c a t e g o r y of divine inspiration, which also includes the special cases of prophetic inspiration a n d prophetic ecstasy. Leise gang tends to l u m p all these together, w h i c h is o n e of the weaknesses of his analysis, for b o t h in Philo a n d in the Classical Greek a n d Hellenistic literature the divine impregnation motif is treated as a rather special instance of the m o r e general t h e m e of divine in spiration. If the divine i m p r e g n a t i o n motif is dealt with as a special case, then there is n o significant correlation between divine inspiration and virginity either in the Classical a n d Hellenistic literature or in Philo. Leisegang cites o n l y a few examples, a n d m a n y
counter
e x a m p l e s of cases where the virginity motif is entirely absent can 1
b e p o i n t e d t o . In m o s t of the passages where Philo explicitly a n d at s o m e length speaks of p r o p h e t i c inspiration or of divine possession a n d ecstasy
(e.g. in R e r . D i v . Her. 69-70, 258-66; Spec. L e g .
I V : 49; Gig. 60-64), there is n o m e n t i o n of virginity. But
even the correlation b e t w e e n the special case of divine
i m p r e g n a t i o n and virginity in Philo's writings is far less consistent than Leisegang indicates. T o b e sure, m a n y of the passages that refer t o divine i m p r e g n a t i o n also refer t o virginity (e.g. Cher. 44-49, Praem.
P o e n . 159-60,
Rer.
D i v . Her.
36-39, P o s t .
C.
134-35,
Spec. Leg. 11:29-31), b u t , o n the other hand, just a b o u t as m a n y do
not
(e.g. Mut.
N o m . 132-38,
142-51; L e g . All. I l l : 180-81,
217-18; D e u s I m m . 5; D e t . P o t . Ins. 60; Migr. A b r . 140). On the basis of such e v i d e n c e as this, t o argue that the o n e d e m a n d s the other is certainly to overstate the case. Finally, although the c o n n e c t i o n b e t w e e n virginity a n d divine impregnation m a y i n d e e d h a v e been suggested t o Philo b y cultic practices
and
m y s t i c a l speculation
of the
Classical
the and
Hellenistic w o r l d , nonetheless b y emphasizing this consideration alone, Leisegang fails to see the w a y in w h i c h the virginity m o t i f functions in Philo's o w n writings, precisely within the c o n t e x t of divine impregnation. A s was seen a b o v e , t o b e c o m e a virgin means, a c c o r d i n g t o Philo, t o forsake the realm of pleasure, the
body,
change, a n d m o r t a l i t y and t o grant t o the rational soul its rightful p l a c e of sovereignty. G o d will n o t consort with t h e soul till she has forsaken the realm of the female " a n d is ranked o n c e m o r e as a 1
Cf. G r a n t , Letter
ALGHJ, III
and
Spirit,
pp.
2-6.
APPENDIXES
9« 1
pure v i r g i n " (Cher. 50). W h a t e v e r the origin of this allegorization —a p r o b l e m that has not been dealt w i t h in this thesis—its signifi c a n c e in a n y g i v e n t e x t in Philo m u s t first of all b e e x p l a i n e d in terms of h o w it functions elsewhere in his writings.
APPENDIX I PHILO'S D E S C R I P T I O N OF T H E T H E R A P E U T A E IN DE
VITA CONTEMPLATIVA IN R E F E R E N C E TO THE
CATEGORIES MALE A N D FEMALE
I n sharp contrast t o the m a n y p e j o r a t i v e remarks a b o u t w o m e n elsewhere in his writings, for the w o m e n a m o n g t h e Philo has n o t h i n g b u t praise.
2
Therapeutae
" T h i n k i n g their m o r t a l life already
e n d e d , " the Therapeutae, a c c o r d i n g t o P h i l o , in their a t t e m p t t o attain t o the vision of G o d , r e n o u n c e d all private p r o p e r t y a n d led a rigorously ascetic life (Vit. C o n t . 13 f f . ) . Their houses, f o o d , a n d c l o t h i n g were all e x t r e m e l y plain and planned in such a w a y as to h e l p o n e d e v e l o p self-control (tynpixsict.) a n d gain f r e e d o m from the imperious d e m a n d s of the sense-perceptible w o r l d (18-29). For
six d a y s e a c h w e e k the Therapeutae s t u d y a n d
meditate
each o n e b y himself, b u t on the seventh d a y all m e e t t o g e t h e r t o hear a discourse b y the senior m e m b e r of the g r o u p . Philo notes that " w o m e n t o o regularly m a k e part of the audience w i t h the same a r d o u r and the same sense of their calling as the m e n " (32). F o l l o w i n g a l e n g t h y d e n u n c i a t i o n of the c o n v i v i a l meals of the Greeks, and particularly of the e f f e m i n a c y a n d p e d e r a s t y that w a s often associated w i t h these meals (40-64), P h i l o refers t o the c o m m o n meals of the T h e r a p e u t a e a n d p r o c e e d s t o describe the m o s t i m p o r t a n t of t h e s e — p r o b a b l y the feast of P e n t e c o s t — i n consider -
1
In Rer.
D i v . H e r . 259 P h i l o s t a t e s t h a t " t h e w i c k e d m a y n e v e r b e
the
i n t e r p r e t e r of G o d , so t h a t n o w o r t h l e s s p e r s o n is G o d - i n s p i r e d in t h e p r o p e r s e n s e . " T h i s is n e a r l y e q u i v a l e n t t o w h a t P h i l o is g e t t i n g a t in e m p h a s i z i n g the
v i r g i n i t y of
the
one
who
receives the
divine impregnation.
God
i n t e r c o u r s e o n l y w i t h t h e s o u l t h a t h a s f o r s a k e n t h e e v i l w a y s of t h e
has
female
a n d has b e c o m e a true virgin. 2
M o s t s c h o l a r s a g r e e t h a t w h e t h e r or n o t s u c h a g r o u p as t h e T h e r a p e u t a e
e v e r a c t u a l l y e x i s t e d , in a n y
c a s e P h i l o ' s p o r t r a y a l of t h e m in V i t .
Cont.
p r o b a b l y t o a large e x t e n t is a p r o j e c t i o n of his o w n i d e a l s r a t h e r t h a n
an
a c c u r a t e d e s c r i p t i o n of a r e a l c o m m u n i t y . F o r t h e p u r p o s e s of t h i s s t u d y , h o w e v e r , t h i s m a k e s t h e w r i t i n g n o less v a l u a b l e .
APPENDIX I
99
1
able d e t a i l . T h e T h e r a p e u t a e assemble w h i t e - r o b e d a n d with faces that reflect b o t h cheerfulness a n d u t m o s t seriousness (66). Before reclining at table t h e y s t a n d
in an o r d e r l y fashion, w i t h
arms
lifted u p a n d eyes gazing t o w a r d s h e a v e n , a n d p r a y that
their
feasting m a y b e a c c e p t a b l e t o G o d (66). Since " t h e y consider the o w n e r s h i p of servants entirely against n a t u r e " (70), the T h e r a p e u t a e k e e p n o slaves t o wait o n t h e m at these sacred meals. R a t h e r , t h e y are a t t e n d e d b y y o u n g e r m e m b e r s of the c o m m u n i t y , w h o serve p r o u d l y a n d with genuine cheerfulness (71-72). N o w i n e is served, b u t o n l y bright clear water, specially w a r m e d " f o r such of the older ones w h o live d e l i c a t e l y . " Likewise, " t h e table is kept pure f r o m the flesh of a n i m a l s . " T h e f o o d is l i m i t e d t o l o a v e s of b r e a d seasoned w i t h salt a n d " s o m e t i m e s also flavored w i t h h y s s o p as a relish for the daintier a p p e t i t e s "
(73).
After a p e r i o d of general silence the presiding officer (upoeSpo?) of the T h e r a p e u t a e discusses v a r i o u s questions suggested b y his or the c o m m u n i t y ' s s t u d y of the H o l y Scriptures. H e p r o c e e d s in a leisurely manner, not m a k i n g a s h o w of his o w n cleverness b u t rather s i m p l y desiring t o share w i t h the entire c o m m u n i t y w h a t he has learned. I n particular he is intent o n m a k i n g clear t o his hearers the inner allegorical m e a n i n g of the Scriptures (78). W o m e n regularly t a k e part in the feast along w i t h the m e n , a l t h o u g h m e n a n d w o m e n are seated separately. Most of these w o m e n , P h i l o notes, "are a g e d virgins (yyjpaial 7tap6evoi), w h o h a v e k e p t their c h a s t i t y n o t u n d e r c o m p u l s i o n , like s o m e of the G r e e k priestesses, b u t of their o w n free will in their ardent y e a r n i n g for w i s d o m . " I n their eagerness t o live t o g e t h e r (aufijitouv) w i t h W i s d o m these a g e d virgins h a v e " s p u r n e d the pleasures of the b o d y a n d desire n o m o r t a l offspring b u t those i m m o r t a l children w h i c h o n l y the soul that is dear t o G o d c a n bring t o the birth u n a i d e d , b e c a u s e t h e F a t h e r has s o w n in her spiritual r a y s enabling her t o b e h o l d the verities of W i s d o m "
(68).
W h e n the presiding officer has finished his e x p o s i t i o n of Scripture, he rises a n d sings a h y m n . H e is followed b y others in turn, " w h i l e all the rest listen in c o m p l e t e silence e x c e p t w h e n t h e y h a v e to
1
V i t . C o n t . 65 ff. T h e p a s s a g e is difficult, for P h i l o d o e s n o t tell us f r o m w h a t t i m e t h e s e v e n w e e k s referred t o w e r e c a l c u l a t e d . W e n d l a n d a r g u e s t h a t P h i l o refers t o a f e a s t h e l d e v e r y s e v e n w e e k s t h r o u g h o u t t h e y e a r . S e e t h e e x t e n s i v e d i s c u s s i o n w i t h references b y C o l s o n in Philo ( L . C . L . ) I X ( 1 9 4 1 ) , p . 1 5 2 , n o t e s a a n d b ; a l s o p p . 5 2 2 - 2 3 , n o t e o n V i t . C o n t . 65.
APPENDIXES
100
c h a n t the closing lines or refrains, voices, men and w o m e n alike"
for then t h e y all lift u p their
(80).
Of particular interest for this s t u d y is P h i l o ' s description of the sacred vigil
(rj Espa
w h i c h is
KOLVW/IQ)
held
after
the
common
m e a l . T h e g r o u p rises a n d all f o r m themselves i n t o t w o choirs, o n e of m e n and the other of w o m e n . T h e r e u p o n t h e y sing h y m n s of praise to G o d , s o m e t i m e s t o g e t h e r a n d s o m e t i m e s
antiphonally.
" T h e n w h e n each c h o i r has separately d o n e its o w n part in the feast, h a v i n g drunk as in the B a c c h i c rites of the strong wine of God's love,
1
t h e y m i x a n d b o t h t o g e t h e r b e c o m e a single choir,
a c o p y of the choir set u p of o l d beside the R e d Sea in h o n o r of the w o n d e r s there w r o u g h t " (85). It is after this m o d e l of the choir that sang b y the R e d Sea t h a t " t h e T h e r a p e u t a e of either sex, n o t e in response t o n o t e and v o i c e to v o i c e , the treble of the w o m e n b l e n d i n g w i t h t h e bass of the m e n , create an h a r m o n i o u s c o n c e n t , m u s i c in the truest sense" (88). " T h u s t h e y c o n t i n u e till d a w n , " writes Philo, " d r u n k w i t h this beautiful d r u n k e n n e s s " (89). S u c h m e n a n d w o m e n as these " h a v e l i v e d in the soul a l o n e " and h a v e a t t a i n e d " t r u e e x c e l l e n c e of life, rising t o the v e r y s u m m i t of f e l i c i t y " (90). P h i l o is able t o a c c e p t a k i n d of e q u a l i t y a m o n g the m e n a n d w o m e n of the T h e r a p e u t a e
precisely b e c a u s e these w o m e n either
are virgins or live as virgins and thus in o n e sense are w o m e n in name only.
2
In a sense t h e y h a v e progressed b e y o n d the sphere of
sexual polarity, and thus their femininity is n o t a barrier t o p a r t i c i p a t i o n in the w o r s h i p a n d other rites of the c o m m u n i t y . B o t h m e n and w o m e n h a v e left b e h i n d their sexuality a n d h a v e attained to a higher u n i t y of the spirit.
3
It is no w o n d e r that this g r o u p h a d
146.
1
Cf. E b r .
2
C h e r . 50. O n t h e u s e of TzcupdlvoQ in reference t o m e n as well as w o m e n ,
see M a t t h e w B l a c k , The Scrolls
Background 3
of the New
and Christian
Testament
Origins.
Studies
in the
Jewish
( 1 9 6 1 ) , p p . 83-88.
Philo recognized, however, t h a t even a m o n g the T h e r a p e u t a e the m a l e -
f e m a l e p o l a r i t y h a d n o t b e e n c o m p l e t e l y o v e r c o m e . T h i s is p e r h a p s s e e n in t h e d o u b l e e n c l o s u r e of t h e s a n c t u a r y , o n e p a r t of w h i c h w a s
best set
a p a r t for t h e m e n , t h e o t h e r for t h e w o m e n . C o n c e i v a b l y , t h i s t y p e of a r r a n g e m e n t w a s a c c e p t e d b y t h e T h e r a p e u t a e s i m p l y b e c a u s e of f a m i l i a r u s a g e , for w o m e n w e r e s e p a r a t e d f r o m m e n b o t h in t h e J e w i s h T e m p l e a n d in t h e synagogues; nonetheless
P h i l o ' s o w n e x p l a n a t i o n of t h e p r a c t i c e w a s t h a t
it w a s for t h e s a k e of p r e s e r v i n g " t h e m o d e s t y b e c o m i n g t o t h e f e m a l e s e x " (Vit.
C o n t . 3 2 - 3 3 ) . I n t e r e s t i n g l y e n o u g h , it is in t h e c o m m u n a l s i n g i n g a n d
d a n c i n g , w h i c h a p p e a r t o r e p r e s e n t t h e h i g h p o i n t of religious i n t e n s i t y , t h a t the distinctions between m a l e a n d female m o s t completely disappear.
The
APPENDIX J great attractiveness
101
for P h i l o , for in m a n y w a y s t h e y
illustrated
w h a t Philo describes in another c o n t e x t as the forsaking of "all t h a t is after the m a n n e r of w o m e n " and the attaining to the state of the " p u r e v i r g i n . "
1
APPENDIX J SEXUAL INTERCOURSE AND
PRAYER
Just as prayer and fasting are often s p o k e n of together in the Gospels, so Paul in I Cor. 7 : 5 associates refraining from
sexual
intercourse—also a kind of f a s t i n g ? — a n d prayer. This same c o r relation is f o u n d in Test. N a p h . 8 : 8 " F o r there is a season for a m a n to e m b r a c e his wife, a n d a season t o abstain therefrom for his p r a y e r . " T h e i m p l i c a t i o n of these passages is that abstinence from sexual relations better fits o n e for prayer. O n e is in a " p u r e r " state, just as the soldiers w h o participated in the H o l y W a r purified t h e m selves b y refraining from sexual intercourse. Cross, Ancient
Library,
p . 72, refers t o the "priestly distinctions [in the Old T e s t a m e n t ] b e t w e e n ritual p u r i t y and pollution, 'physical' holiness and ' p h y s i c a l ' sin." "Certain sexual a c t s , " he writes, "render o n e unclean so that he m a y n o t a p p r o a c h h o l y things." A l t h o u g h w e c a n n o t here e x p l o r e the origin and s c o p e of the H o l y W a r tradition, it is quite possible that w e h a v e in this motif s o m e t h i n g parallel to w h a t can b e o b s e r v e d in early Greek religion, n a m e l y the belief that sexual intercourse m a k e s o n e liable t o a kind of d e m o n i c infection and thus cultically unclean. It is p r o b a b l y such a sentiment,
for e x a m p l e , that is reflected in
(De Abstinentia
Porphyrry's
statement, ra
a9poSitria
m a n n , Askese,
p p . 201-13, argues, this i m p u r i t y is n o t t o b e u n d e r
jxiaivei
I V . 20). A s Strath-
s t o o d ethically, for intercourse with a prostitute does n o t sooner m a k e o n e unclean than intercourse w i t h o n e ' s wife, and an ejacula tion during sleep also m a k e s o n e unclean. N o t e also C D 1 2 : 1 - 2 : " L e t n o m a n lie with a w o m a n in the c i t y of the sanctuary for fear of defiling the c i t y of the sanctuary with their d e f i l e m e n t . "
r e l e v a n c e of t h i s for t h e s t u d y immediately apparent.
of s u c h a p a s s a g e
as
Gal.
3:28
2
These
should
be
1
Cher. 50. Cf. D e t . P o t . I n s . 28. T r a n s l a t i o n of A . D u p o n t - S o m m e r , trans. G. V e r m e s (1961), p. 154. 2
The
Essene
Writings
from
Qumran,
102
APPENDIXES
passages o n sexual intercourse in relationship t o prayer, the p r a c t i c e of the H o l y W a r , or w i t h i n the limits of Jerusalem are all cultically oriented, h o w e v e r , a n d thus o n e m a y n o t b e justified in using t h e m as e v i d e n c e for the overall v i e w of Q u m r a n a n d the E a r l y C h u r c h t o w a r d s sexuality.
BIBLIOGRAPHY TEXTS Biblia
Hebraica,
ed.
Eissfeldt). Plato.
With (The
The
by
R . Kittel.
Stuttgart,
an English
Translation,
of Aristotle,
ed. b y
I-XII,
L o e b Classical L i b r a r y ) .
Works
(7th
P. Kahle,
A . Alt, and O.
1958. t r a n s , b y H . N . F o w l e r , e t al.
Cambridge, Mass.,
1914 et
sequens.
I - X I I , e d . b y J. A . S m i t h a n d W . D . R o s s . O x f o r d ,
1908-52. Septuaginta. I:
Stoicorum The
Scientiarum
Gottingensis
auctoritate
edidit
A. Rahlfs
S t u t t g a r t , 1926.
veterum fragmenta,
Apocrypha by
The
Societatis
Genesis.
I - I V , e d . b y J. v o n A r n i m . S t u t t g a r t , 1 9 0 5 - 1 4 .
and Pseudepigrapha
of the Old Testament
in English,
I - I I , ed.
R . H . Charles. O x f o r d , 1 9 1 3 .
Greek
Versions
of the Testaments
of the Twelve
Patriarchs,
ed. b y R . H .
C h a r l e s . O x f o r d , 1908. The
Essene
Writings
from
Qumran,
ed.
by
translation b y G. V e r m e s ) . N e w Y o r k , Philonis
Alexandrini
Opera
quae
A. Dupont-Sommer
(English
1962.
supersunt,
I-VII.
I - V I : Text,
ed.
by
L . C o h n a n d P . W e n d l a n d ; V I I : I n d i c e s , e d . b y J. L e i s e g a n g . B e r l i n ,
1896-1930. Philo.
With an English G.
H.
Whitaker,
Translation,
I - X , s u p p . I - I I , ed. b y F . H . Colson,
et
Loeb
al.
(The
Classical
Library).
Cambridge,
Mass., 1929-62. Die
Werke
Philos
von
Alexandria
in
deutscher
Vbersetzung,
L. Cohn, I. H e i n e m a n n , a n d M . Adler. Breslau, Josephus,
with anEnglish
R. Marcus Novum
Testamentum
K. Aland. Midrash
Graece,
Translated
Library).
London,
1926-43.
ed. b y E b e r h a r d Nestle, E r w i n Nestle, into
by
I - V I I , ed. b y H . St. J T h a c k e r a y and
Classical
25th ed. Stuttgart,
Rabba.
ed.
Translation,
(The L o e b
I - V I , ed.
1909-38.
and
1963. and
Indices,
b y H . Freedman and M . Simon. I - I X : Texts; X : Index
English
with
Notes,
Glossary
Volume.
L o n d o n , 1939. Mishnah
Megillah,
The
Mishnah,
The
Babylonian
e d . a n d t r a n s , b y J. R a b b i n o w i t z . O x f o r d , 1 9 3 1 .
trans, b y H . D a n b y . L o n d o n , 1933. Talmud
(English translation), ed. b y I. Epstein. L o n d o n ,
8
i93 -52. The
Gospel by
The
Gospel and
Acta
According of Philip.
Commentary,
Apostolorum Leipzig,
New
to Thomas Translated ed. b y
Apocrypha,
Testament
Apocrypha,
Apocrypha,
II:
lesungen Irenaei,
1857-
from
the Coptic
R. M c L . Wilson. I - I I , ed. b y
Text, New
with an York,
Introduction
1962.
R . A . Lipsius and M . Bonnet.
1891-1903. I, ed. b y E . H e n n e c k e a n d W . Schneemelcher
(English translation
Sancti
(Coptic text with E n g l i s h translation), ed.
A . G u i l l a u m o n t , e t al. N e w Y o r k , 1 9 5 9 .
ed.
Evangelien,
und
Ubungen,
Adversus
by
R. McL. Wilson).
Philadelphia,
e d . b y E . K l o s t e r m a n n (Kleine 8). 3 r d
Haereses,
ed. Berlin,
1963.
Texte fur
Vor-
1929.
I - I I , ed. b y W . W . H a r v e y . C a m b r i d g e ,
BIBLIOGRAPHY
104 Die
Pseudoklementinen, lichen
The Clementine and
ed. b y B . R e h m
and
(DieGriechischenChrist-
42). Leipzig, 1953.
Homilies,
in The Ante-Nicene
J. D o n a l d s o n . B u f f a l o ,
Recognitions Corpus
I:Homilien,
Schriftsteller,
of Clement,
Fathers,
V I I I , ed. b y A . R o b e r t s
Fathers,
V I I , ed. b y A . R o b e r t s
1886.
in The Ante-Nicene
J. D o n a l d s o n . B u f f a l o , 1886.
Hermeticum,
I - I V , ed. b y A . D . N o c k a n d A . - J . Festugiere (Collection
d e s Universite-s d e F r a n c e ) . P a r i s , 1 9 4 5 - 5 4 . T e r t u l l i a n , On the Apparel
of Women,
in The Ante-Nicene
A . R o b e r t s a n d J. D o n a l d s o n . B u f f a l o , The
Excerpta London,
ex Theodoto
of Clement
Fathers,
I V , ed. b y
1886.
of Alexandria,
ed. b y
R.
P.
Casey.
1934.
De Abstinentia,
inPorphyrii
A m m o n i u s , I n Porphyrii
Opuscula,
Isagogen
taria in Aristotelem
e d . b y A . N a u c k . 2 n d e d . L e i p z i g , 1886.
sive V Voces, e d . b y A . B u s s e , in
Graeca,
Commen-
I V , 3. B e r l i n , 1 8 9 1 .
LITERATURE Arndt,
W . F.
Testament from
and Gingrich, F. W . , A
Greek-English
and other Early
Literature
W . Bauer,
Christian
Worterbuch,
B a u e r , W . , Griechisch-Deutsches ments
und
der ubrigen
ed.).
urchristlichen
B i l l i n g s , T . H . , The Platonism B l a c k , M . , The Scrolls
4th
Worterbuch
Chicago,
Judaeus.
Origins.
Christian
Literature,
the
des Neuen
5th ed. Berlin,
New
Testa 1958.
Chicago, 1919.
N e w Y o r k , 1961.
B l a s s , F . a n d D e b r u n n e r , A . , A Greek Grammar other Early
of
1957.
zu den Schriften
Literatur.
of Philo
and Christian
Lexicon
(Translated and adapted
of the New
Testament
and
trans, and rev. b y R . W . F u n k . Chicago,
1961. B o r n k a m m , G . , " D i e H a r e s i e d e s K o l o s s e r b r i e f e s , " in Das Ende Paulus-Studien, B o u g h t o n , F . S., The Bousset,
2nd
of Progress
Christos.
des Christentums
Brandenburger, Brehier,
Idea
W . , Kyrios
fdngen
E . , Adam
E . , Les
idies
in Philo
Geschichte bis Irenaeus.
und
Christus.
philosophiques
Judaeus.
the Old
Testament.
C h i l d s , B . , Myth Philologus,
Oxford,
Reality und
York,
in
Neukirchen,
1962.
de Philon
im Urchristentum.
the Old
d'Alexandrie.
and English
Lexicon
Library
T u b i n g e n , 1949.
Testament.
der
London,
Schriften
S u p p l e m e n t b a n d V I I [1899],
Philos.
387-435).
ofQumran
i960. (reprint
Leipzig,
and Modern
from
1899.
Biblical
Studies.
1958.
C u l l m a n n , O . , The Christology
of the New
Testament,
t r a n s , b y S. C . G u t h r i e
C . A . M . H a l l . 2 n d e d . rev. P h i l a d e l p h i a , 1 9 6 3 .
D a n i e l o u , J., Philon D a u b e , D . , The New D a v i e s , W . D . , Paul D e l l i n g , G . , Paulus'
d'Alexandrie. Testament
Paris, 1958. and Rabbinic
and Rabbinic Slellung
Judaism.
zu Frau
, A r t . Trap6lvoi;. Theologisches §
An-
3rd e d . G o t t i n g e n , 1 9 2 6 .
et religieuses
Chronologie
C r o s s , F . M . , Jr., The Ancient
and
1932.
den
1957.
v o n , Die Askese
and
L . , Einteilung
New
von
ed. Paris, 1925.
Campenhausen, H . Cohn,
Gesetzes.
New York,
des Christusglaubens
B r o w n , F . , D r i v e r , S. R . , a n d B r i g g s , C . A . , A Hebrew of
des
pp. 139-56. Miinchen, 1952.
Judaism.
L o n d o n , 1956.
2nd e d . L o n d o n , 1 9 5 8 .
und Ehe.
Worterbuch
Stuttgart, 1931.
zum Neuen
Testament.
24-35-
D o d d , C . H . , The
Bible
and
the Greeks.
London,
1935.
V (1954),
BIBLIOGRAPHY
D r u m m o n d , J . , Philo development
Stockholm,
L . M . , Marriage kultische
B . , The
Laws
A . F . , Philo
Stuttgart,
hdnsyn
in
the Bible
and
by
im Altertum.
of the Gospel
York,
in
its
till hans
eskatologiska
the Talmud.
Cambridge,
G i e s s e n , 1910.
According
to
Thomas,
trans,
Theosophie.
2nd
by
1961.
und die
judisch-alexandrinische
ed.
1835.
G i n z b e r g , L . , The Legends script
med sdrskild
philosophy
1939.
Keuschheit
Theology
E . J. S h a r p e . N e w Gfrorer,
1888.
1942.
F e h r l e , E . , Die Gartner,
I-II. London,
av Alexandria
forestallningar. Mass.,
or, the Jewish-Alexandrian
completion,
E l m g r e n , H . , Philon Epstein,
Judaeus;
and
105
of the Jews,
H . Szold and
I - V I I , trans, from the G e r m a n m a n u by
B. Cohen).
G i v e r s e n , S., " N a g H a m m a d i B i b l i o g r a p h y 1948-1963." Studia
Theologica
Philadelphia, 17
(1963),
( V o l . V I I , Index,
1909-38.
I39-87-
G o o d e n o u g h , E . R . , By Light, New Haven, , An
P. R a d i n
Light.
The MysticGospel
of Hellenistic
Judaism.
1935.
Introduction
to Philo
Judaeus.
2nd e d . O x f o r d ,
1962.
, " A N e o - P y t h a g o r e a n S o u r c e in P h i l o J u d a e u s . " Yale Classical 3 (1932), 117-64, The Politics of Philo Judaeus. Practice and Theory, with a Bibliography
of
New Haven,
1938.
Grant,
Philo
R . M . , Gnosticism
, The Letter
by
H . L. Goodhart
and Early
and the Spirit.
, " N o t e s on t h e G o s p e l
and
Christianity.
London,
Studies General
E . R. Goodenough.
N e w York,
1959.
1957.
of T h o m a s . "
Vigiliae
Christianae
13
(1959),
170-80. , " T w o G n o s t i c G o s p e l s . " Journal G r o s s , J., Philons Tubingen,
von Alexandreia
of Biblical
Anschauungen
Literature
79 ( i 9 6 0 ) ,
iiber die Natur
des
1-11.
Menschen.
1930.
H e i n e m a n n , I . , Philons Untersuchungen
griechische
zu Philons
und jiidische Darstellung
Bildung.
Kulturvergleichende
der jiidischen
Gesetze.
Breslau,
1932. H o r o v i t z , J., Untersuchungen schopfung. Jeremias,
Marburg,
iiber Philons
J., A r t . 'ASdcjj.. Theologisches
I (1933). I4I-43, A r t . "AvGpwTTO?.
und Platons
Lehre
von der
Welt-
1900.
Theologisches
Worterbuch
Worterbuch
zum
zum
Neuen
Neuen
Testament.
Testament.
I
(1933). 365-67J e r v e l l , J., Imago Dei. Gen 1126 f. im Spdtjudentum, in der Gnosis und in den paulinischen Brief en. G o t t i n g e n , i960. J o n a s , H . The Gnostic Religion. The Message of the Alien God and the Beginnings of Christianity. B o s t o n , 1958. K a h l e r , E . , Die Frau in den paulinischen Briefen. Ziirich, i 9 6 0 . K e e , H . C , Y o u n g , F . W . , a n d F r o e h l i c h , K . , Understanding the New Testa ment. 2 n d ed. E n g l e w o o d Cliffs, N . J . , 1965. K l e i n , F . - N . , Die Lichtterminologie hermetischen Schriften. Leiden,
bei Philon 1962.
von Alexandrien
und
in
den
K l i j n , A . F . J., " T h e 'Single O n e ' i n t h e G o s p e l of T h o m a s . " Journal Biblical Literature Si (1962), 271-78.
of
K r a e l i n g , C . H . , Anthropos and Son of Man. A Study in the Religious cretism of the Hellenistic Orient. N e w Y o r k , 1927.
Syn
io6
BIBLIOGRAPHY
L e i p o l d t , J., Die Frau
in der antiken
L e i s e g a n g , H . , Der heiligeGeist. Erkenntnis
in
Das
Welt und im Urchristentum. Wesen und Werden
der Philosophie
und
Religion
der
Leipzig, 1955. mystisch-intuitiven
der Griechen.
Leipzig and
Berlin, 1919. , Pneuma
Hagion:
Evangelien
aus
Der
Ursprung
der griechischen
Liddell, H . G. and Scott,
des
M a c h e n , J. G . , The Virgin
Birth
Lexicon,
New York,
pro Christianis
(Unpublished
Th.
School). Cambridge, Mass.,
der
synoptischen
1922. r e v . e d . b y I I . S.
1925-40.
of Christ.
M a l h e r b e , A . J,, " T h e Supplicatio
Oepke,
Leipzig,
R . , A Greek-English
Jones and R . McKenzie. Oxford,
Platonism"
Geistbegriffs
Mystih.
D.
1930.
of Athenagoras
dissertation,
and Middle
Harvard
Divinity
1963.
A . , A r t . yoviq. Theologisches
Worterbuch
zum
Neuen
Testament.
I
(1933). 776-90. Pascher,
J.,
H
Vergottung Rad,
BASIAIKH bei Philon
G . v o n . Genesis.
O M ) E . Der
von
Konigsweg
Alexandreia.
A Commentary,
zu
Wiedergeburt
und
Paderborn, 1931.
t r a n s , b y J. H . M a r k s . P h i l a d e l p h i a ,
1961. R e i t z e n s t e i n , R . , Poimandres: christlichen R i n g g r e n , II.,
Literatur. The Faith
Studien
Leipzig,
zur
griechisch-agyptischen
und
friih-
1904.
of Qumran,
trans, b y E . T . Sander. Philadelphia,
1963. S a n d m e l , S., Philo's in Jewish
Place
Literature.
S c h l i e r . H , Der Brief S c h m i d t , H . , Die
in Judaism.
A Study
of Conceptions
of
Abraham
Cincinnati, 1956.
an die Epheser,
Anthropologic
2nd ed. Diisseldorf,
Philons
S c h w e i z e r , E . , A r t . irvs3|i.a. Theologisches
von Alexandreia. Worterbuch
1958. Leipzig, 1933.
zum
Neuen
Testament.
V I ( 1 9 5 9 ) . 330-453. S e g e l b e r g , E . , " T h e C o p t i c - G n o s t i c G o s p e l A c c o r d i n g t o P h i l i p a n d its S a c r a m e n t a l S y s t e m . " Numen 7 ( i 9 6 0 ) , 189-200. S e l b y , D . J., Toward the Understanding of St. Paul. E n g l e w o o d Cliffs, N . J.,
1962. Stauffer,
E . , A r t . ytxpioi.
Theologisches
Worterbuch
zum
Neuen
Testament.
I (1933). 646-55. S t e g m a n n , B . A . , Christ, "The Man from Heaven". A Study of I Cor. 15 '.45-47 in the Light of the Anthropology of Philo Judaeus. "Washington, 1927. S t r a c k , H . L . , a n d B i l l e r b e c k , P . , Kommentar zum Talmud und Midrasch, I - V I . Munchen, 1926-61.
Neuen
S t r a t h m a n n , H . , Geschichte der fruhchristlichen Monchtums. Leipzig, 1914.
bis zur Entstehung
S t r e c k e r , G . , Das Judentum suchungen, 70). Berlin,
in den 1958.
Pseudoklementinen.
T h y e n , H . , " D i e P r o b l e m s der neueren Rundschau 23 ( 1 9 5 5 ) , 230-46. V o l k e r , W . , Fortschritt
und
Askese
Vollendung
Testament
(Texte
und
Philo-Forschung."
bei Philo
von
aus des Unter
Theologische
Alexandrien.
Leipzig,
1938. W o l f s o n , H . A . , Philo. Foundations of Religious Philosophy Christianity, and Islam, I - H . Cambridge, Mass., 1947.
in
Judaism,
, Religious Philosophy. A Group of Essays. Cambridge, Mass., 1961. Zeller, E . , A History of Greek Philosophy, I-II, t r a n s , b y S . F . A l l e y n e . London, 1881. , Outlines of the History of Greek Philosophy trans, b y L. R . P a l m e r . L o n d o n , 1 9 3 1 .
(13th ed. rev. b y W . Nestle),
INDEX OF REFERENCES
I.
De
A b r a h a m o (Abr.)
6 102 "6 122
4 57 55
ISO
248
42 94
257
79
De
II
Agriculture
(Agric.)
30 73 94-97 139 De
18 42 9 20
Aeternitate Mundi
(Aet.
Mund.)
55 H68
9 9
D e Conf usione L i n g u a -
Quod Deterius
rum
insidiari s o l e t ( D e t .
De
C h e r u b i m (Cher.)
43 96 62 62 97 61 6 1 , 62 61 12, 62 63 5 1 , 52, 5 5 , 6 1 , 7 5 , 98, 100, I O I 57 57 57-64 90 59 90 65 87 91 11 92 11 95 l i
1
1
(Conf. L i n g . )
6 14-15 21 62-63 77-82 146 169 ff. 176 176-77 190
9 8
84 29 86 29 23 15 86 8
Congressu
quaerendae Eruditi o n is g r a t i a ( C o n g r . )
23 96 106 155
63 90 46 9o Decalogo (Dec.)
76 102
9 50
134 156
2
4 9
Q u o d Deterius Potiori insidiari s o l e t ( D e t . Pot. Ins.)
28 50 60 80 82 82-84 83 84 89 89-90 90 125
48, 52, I O I 41 97 24 15, 16 4 1 5 , 2 4 , 2 5 , 85 15 18 17 49 9 J
Potiori
P o t . Ins.)
139
30
147-49 170-71
54 91
Quod Deus immutabilis sit ( D e u s I m m . )
5 14 46 47"4 59 133 136-37 137 138 8
De
De
40-41 43-52 44 44-46 44-49 45 46 47 48 49 50
PHILO
De
62, 9 7 49 16 93 9 8 5 3 . 62 3 53 6
Ebrietate (Ebr.)
5 146 212
54 100 32
D e F u g a et I n v e n t i o n e (Fug-)
50-52 51 51-52 68 ff. 71 121 128 165 179-82 188 De
4 5 6-7 9
63 4 i . 49 62 23 15 9 42 16 8 39
G i g a n t i b u s (Gig.)
42 485 5 8
INDEX OF REFERENCES
io8
12-13 13-16 25-27
86 86 17
53 58 60-64
49 9 97
(Leg.
!
All.)
IL44 IL49 11:50 IL71-72 11:73
38,94 42
:Q7
De
20 27 27 18
iff.
I : a ff.
I:11
1
5 27 90
I:15
L21-22 I:25
1:3! 1 : 3 1 ff. 1:32 1.: 33 1:39 1:42 1:43 1=53
1:70 1:72-73 1:82 1:88 1:90 T :gi
i
J
5 , 34 22, 25, 26, 81-82 1 5 , 1 6 , 81 24, 81-82 20 24, 82 9, 39 8i ' 84 90 6 14,82 1 4 . 1 5 . 82 1 7 , 87 5
9 43 1 4 , 56 56
"1:43 I I I :4Q in.61-68 111:67 111:68
56 39, 90 93 90 92
1II:6Q
1:95 IL2-3 I I : 4 ff. 11:6 11:7 11:8
8 15 16 81 15 90 91
lT:i2
33
5
11:12-13 32,33 I I : 13 r6, 2 1 , 32, 33, 38, 6 5 , 82, 83, 84, 88 I I : 16 g2 I I : 17 9 1 , 92 II:19 39 IL19-52 88 11:24 39, 88 IL38 ' 16 11:40 88 I I : 40 ff. 34
! i
Mutatione
10 30-31 30-32 33-34 5 132-38
87 23 84 5o 82 97
I 2
6
93 90, 93 93 46 82
T83
ff.
223 Quod
Omnis
Probus
L i b e r sit ( O m . P r o b .
III:ioo
11
I I I : 107
92
Ill:io8
43
46
IIL113
92
De Opificio Mundi
III:ii5
84
111:129 111:131
79 79 14,
15,
24
111:165
46
III:178
43
I I I : 180 III:i8o-i8i III:i82
92
111:217-18 111:217-19 111:219 "1:234-43
97 61 62 43
De
Lib.)
' 35
;
2
j i
3
i
Migratione
A b r a h a m i (Migr. A b r . )
25 3i f f
T
46 57
[
3 "33
55
I
34-35 66-67 76 100
56 84 <) 39
'5
(Op. Mund.) '
6r 63, 9 7
2
53. 6 1 , 62 97 54 30 1 6 , 28 17
'31
138 142-51 149 184
93
111:69-76 111:70 I I I 171 111:94 111:95-96
I I I : I 6 I
11:2
2
111:7 I I I : n 111:29 111:41
82 90 56 97 54
N o m i n u m (Mut. Norn.)
All.)
I :T I :
II
103 119 134-42 140 141
88 63 43 91 39
11:74 L e g u m Allegoria (Leg.
De Migratione A b r a h a m i (Migr. A b r . )
L e g u m Allegoria
D e Gigantibus (Gig.)
|
12 13 13-H
15 16 19-20 24 25 26 29 29 ff. 35 36 36 ff. 36-128 37 43 53 54
28, 33 9 4. 7 20 27 27 26 26 27 27 82 27 28 27 26 27 26 28 27 20 90 90
109
INDEX OF REFERENCES D e Opificio
Mundi
De
{Op. Mund.)
55 62 64 66 69 69 ff.
20, 23 18
71 72-75 72 ff.
55 89 23, 28
73 76 77 77-78 89 100 114-16 117 129 129-30 131 ff. 133
27 27, 28 28 i
5
" 5«> 56ff157 i6o-63a 161 165-66 167 '70 172 T
38 39 49 37,38 9, 39 91 38 42 38 35 7
86 85 84 92 Posteritate
Caini
4 1 , 42 41,42 39 4 1 , 43 92 92 24
1:43
1:45 1:45 ff. I: 6 I: 7 4
( P o s t . C.)
6 34 52 68 101-102
54 4i 9 54 6
134-35 135 165 177
97 61 9 39
1:48 D50 1:52
39 42 81
I:92
1:93 I I : 11-12 I I : 12 11 * I ^
11:34 I I : 49
De
Soluti-
(Quaest. in Gen.)
4
De
89 27, 28, 29, 32, 34, 83, 84, 88 1 5 , 90 89 29 51 89 18 29 29 29 89
1 6 , 20-26, 29-35, 38. 65 135 >5, 1 6 , 28, 30, 31 *3<5 ff29, 30, 35ff., 49, 82, 89 136-50 89, 92 136-70 87 i37 36 i39 25. 30, 3 1 . 36 142 36 144 3 1 , 36 145 17 146 1 5 , 1 7 , 31 148 ff. 36 150 36 151 49. 92 151-52 37, 87, 88 1 5 1 ff. 36ft., 68, 72 i"54
Quaestiones et ones in Genesin
14 18 45 53
Praemiis et
68, 69 48 ^2 90 39, 46 ff.
Poenis
(Praem. Poen.)
HI: 3
28-46 40 46 108
134
153 ff-
Plantatione
(Plant.)
57 1 6 , 57 17, 57 94 94 63 52 97
i n
156-60 158-60 159-60
14,39,41, 43, 90
IIDg III:xo
56 86
111=45 I I I : 48
86 38, 94
I V : 15
42 55 86
I V : 49 I V = 74
Quaestiones et
IV:86
94
Exodum
I V : 117
52
(Quaest. in E x . )
IV:ng
52
I V : 242
52
o n e s in
1:2 I:
3
1:4 I:j
1:8 IT: 3 (F: .'.•)
! :
Soluti-
46 46 46 4 1 , 46 46,47 5i,53.6i 50
II:5i Quaestiones et
55 Soluti-
ones in Genesin {Quaest. in Gen.)
81 81 26
1:8
1:14 l:ig
1:25 1:27 1:33 1:37 1:42
1
39, 4 41 4 ,43 4 1 , 42 37 2
Quis
Rerura
Divinarum (Rer.
19 22-39 3 -39 38 42 53 55 56-57 60-61 63-64 69 69-70 6
73 74 132
Heres
Div. Her.)
90 55 97 52 91 90 1 4 , 15 24, 25 43 43 56 97 90 56 17
INDEX OF REFERENCES
no Quis R e r a m Divinarum
D e Somniis Heres
(Rer. D i v . Her.)
!
133 ff,
19
138-39 164 183-85 192 225 230-31 231 232 232-33
19 29, 32, 34, 88 16, 17 46 84 22, 23 17 14, 15, 16 18
255 258-66 259 264-65 274
46 97 98 56 1 5 , 58, 83
D e Sacrificiis A b e l i s e t C a i n i (Sacr. A . C . )
13 20 ff. 28 60 62 63 76 100 103 105-106 112
9 92 9 12 11 46 9 83 42 91 46
D e Sobrietate
(Sobr.)
55
11
D e Somniis
I: o 1:39 3
1:6o 1:73-74 1:102
1:126 1 : 1 3 3 ff. 1:138 1:140 1:164
I:i8off. I:188
D e Specialibus
(Som.)
52
L e g i b u s (Spec. L e g . )
I:200
52
IV: 9
1:246 11:70
39 37.49.5°
1:199
II:106
41
ID176-77
55
II:i8
32
4
11:229-30 11:232
93 56
H:253 11:273
93 53
D e Specialibus L e g i b u s (Spec. Leg.)
1:9 1:41 1:79 I:8i 1:97
38,90,94 11 9 1 5 , 24 89
I:IOI
94
1:105-107 I:i29 1:200-201 1:319 1:325 1:329
53 53 41 11 58 33
11:24 11:29-31 11:30-31
42 97 54
11:33 11:56
41 51 51
11:64 11:124
42
11:147
46
II:20i
11
111:34-36
94
111:35 III :37- 2
95 58
111:40 111:43-45
10 9
111:83-84 I I I : 108
(Sam.)
85,87 8 57 24
8 58 86 85,86 86 11 86 90
4
56, 97
4
I V : 92
176
84 14, 1 7 , 24 11
IV:235
47
I V : 123 I V :
!
De
Virtutibus
11-12 13 21 75 144 174 178 203 ff. 205
(Virt.)
43 84, 90 83 1 1 , 90 90 11 11 24 15
D e Vita Contemplativa (Vit. Cont.)
2 13 ff. 18-29 32 32-33 40-64 57-63 60 63 65 ff.
16 98 98 98 100 98 83 58 9, 38, 87 99
66 68 70 71-72 73 78 80 85 88 89 90
99 99 99 99 99 99 100 100 100 100 100
D e Vita Mosis (Vit. Mos.)
11:65
24
24 89
II:68-69
79
II:i47
92
III:ii3 III:i35 III:i79
94 11 50
II:2io
51
11:224
46
I I : 2 4 3 ff.
42
111:207
24, 82
IL288
49
INDEX
III
OF REFERENCES
II. O L D T E S T A M E N T
Genesis
Genesis (Gen.)
(Gen.)
1 9 , 34 1-2 28 f. 1 : 1 ff. 26 1:1-2:3 29 1:26 23, 28, 72 1: 26 f. 3 1:26-27 64 1:27 21-26, 27, 28, 3 1 , 82
9:6 15:10 18:11 18:27 21:7 38:7 39 39: iff-
1:31 19 2-50 5 2:4 27 2:4-5 29 2:4-7 9 2:6 29 2 : 7 2 1 - 2 6 , 22, 29, 31 2:22 72-73 3 93 4 4 4:17 41 8:18 47
Exodus
i
Numbers
24 22 51-52 5<> 54 93 41 43
(Num.)
27:8-11 3 0 : 4 ff. I
42 42
Kings
17:8-24
53
Psalms
8
89
(Ex.) Proverbs
12:5 23:26
46 94
(Prov.)
18:8 19:15
83 83
2
Leviticus
(Lev.) Isaiah
21:10-15 27:1-8 Numbers
1
54 41 (Num.)
(Is.)
54:1
52
Jeremiah
21:8-9
(Jer.)
9
f
25: 7 -
43
3:4
96
III. N E W T E S T A M E N T
Matthew
19:3-12 22:23-33 22:30
(Matt.)
78, 80 78 78, 80
Luke
20:36
78
Acts
4:24 14:15 17:24
76 76 76
!
I Corinthians (I Cor.)
Ephesians
7 7:5 7:25-31 7:25-35 7:32ft. 11:2-16 11:11 12:13 14:34-36 15
3:9
76, 80 101 77 77 77 80 80 80 80 69
(Rom.)
1 1:20
37 76
3:3 8:18-24 14:14 14:20
7° 76 76 76
76
Colossians
(Col.)
1:16 3:11
76 80
I Timothy
(I T i m . )
2:14
40
Hebrews
(Heb.)
5 I I Corinthians (IICor.)
Romans
(Eph.)
6
5 Galatians
3:26-28 3:28
9
(Gal.)
I Peter
89 (I
3:7 Revelation
79 78, 79, 80, 101
Pet.)
4:11 10:6 14:4
4° (Rev.) 6
7 76 7 s
INDEX OF
112
REFERENCES
IV. I N T E R T E S T A M E N T A L A N D R A B B I N I C Damascus
Enoch :
i5 3-7
7
8
Document
(CD)
Genesis R a b b a h
(Gen
R)
12:1-2 IV
WRITINGS
IOI
8
10
Maccabees
1:6 2:6
90 90
b'Erubin 18a
Testament tali ( T e s t .
of
10
Naph-
Naph.) Megillah
8:8
101
9a
10
V. A P O C R Y P H A E N E W T E S T A M E N T W R I T I N G S A N D N A G H A M A D I Acts
of
Acts
John
63
75
of
H 27 5 61 89-103
75 71 75 75 75
1
Acts
of
Peter
34
75
Gospel of Philip
Thomas
G o s p e l of P h i l i p Acts
of
Philip
7
44
71
1
72,
73
73
\T . O T H E R Plato
73
8
7 79 127
73.
Gospel
of
74
37 61b 114
74 77 74
70,
LITERATURI Terlullian
V I I I , 1, 2 5 1 b . 1 0 - 1 2
410D
28
Hermetic Poimandres
246 ff.
I, 9.
Ive-naeus 84
Adversus
71 Porphyry
15
Republic
2
Writings
Phaedrus
439D
De Cultu F e m i n a r u m I,
47
84
Haereses
De
Abstinentia
IV,
20
38
189C-193 D
83
1, 21, 3 ( H a r v e y 1 4 , 2) Clement
Timaeas 3 4 B ff.
22
34C
27
3?I>
27
69C
84
of
E x c e r p t a ex 21:1-3 67-68 79-80
Writings
I, 71
12, 12,
14a, 14b,
27 4-5
II,
15
II,
15, 3
Theodoto
III,
24
67
III,
27
67
III,
68
7° 71 71
Stromateis 28 28
III,
g,
III,
1 3 , 92
63
Homilies
Alexandria
A ristotle Catcgoriae
101
Pseudo-Clementine
Symposium i«9Cff.
Thomas
22
Physica
Cratylus
74 73 73
69 69
67 70
67
XIII,
16
67
XIX,
18
67
XIX,
21
67
I N D E X Adam 74,
6,
22,
30,
O F S U B J E C T S
31,
32,
73,
94, Mundi,
De
4
Allegorical interpretation Allegorists, the extreme Allegory
of
Amesha
the
Laws
Spentas
Ammonius Apollo
7
8 95
of
not
por met
Created
2
21, 34, 38, 62, 65, 66, 84 man 88 man
39,
70,
72,
73,
motif,
use
oE
72
69,
Delling, G.
101
72,
73,
78,
96
Desire,
esp.
sexual
desire
38, 52, 67, 72, 92,
Dionysus
96
Discipline
47, 50,
Divine
19,
29,
94
54
impregnation
96,
92
50
Delphi 37,
77,
51-53,
55-64,
97
Divine possession Division
56
17, 4 8 , 4 9 , 6 8 , 7 2 ,
D o d d , C. H .
77
21,37,87 J.
3, 4, 6 2 , 8 2 , 8 4 , 85,
86
Becoming
Duality,
20 bisexuality 62,
M.
72,
20,
21,
70,
32,
83
dualism
Dupont-Sommer,
100
2, 49, 50, 66, 67,
87
Dyad
A.
101
16
14
Body
36, 46, 51, 52, 56, 89, 90, 91,
Ecstasy
Ennoia
Bridal
Error
chamber
55, 56, 96,
Egyptians,
92, 9 3 , 9 5 , 9 9 Bornkamm, G. 80 Brehier, E. 3, 35
Charioteer,
93
Plato's parable
Chastity
99
Children
74, 75 B . S.
63 68 70, 7 3 , 74, 77, 78, 79,
80 of
90
Eschatological asceticism Essenes Eve
19
,
7
ex
Theodoto
12, 6 8 ,
69
68, 70, 7 1 ,
2
Exodus 5 Exposition of the
Chrysostom 96 Cleanthes 17
77
12
9, 7 2 , 7 3 , 7 4
Excerpta
Christ 71, 72, 73 Chrysippus 12
Clement of Alexandria Cohn, L. 5, 4 3 -
the
69
68, 71, 72, 73
20, 36, 53, 92,
97
Gospel according to
Eschatology Change
Childs,
drama of
2
67,
Drummond,
Blood
19 95
22
D a n i e l o u , J.
19
38,
89-93,
sexual-mythical
Cullmann, O .
Death
34. 4 9 , 5L 5 3 . 6 2 , 6 5 , 6 6 , 69, Athena 50 Athenagoras 6, 2 5
34,
76,
63
a m o n g the R a b b i s 1o A n d r o g y n o u s man, m y t h of 38, 72 A r e t e (see Virtue) Aristophanes 83 Aristotle 12 A r n i m , J, v o n 17 Asexual, asexuality 16, 18, 2 1 , 3 2 ,
Black,
cosmos,
Cross, F. M . Jr.
4
Bisexual,
the
world
Creation,
96
68, 73, 8 3 . Androgynous , 83, 8 7 , Androgynous
5J,
t r a y e d in m y t h o l o g i c a l - s e x u a l a p h o r s in P h i l o ' s w r i t i n g s
5, 8,
33
Androgynous
Baau
4 , 7, 1 7 , 2 3 , 3 5 ,
99
Creation 5,
N A M E S
Colson, F, H ,
82
Aetemitate
7
72,
A N D
Laws
4 , 5,
Female, d e s t r u c t i o n of the 70 F e m a l e , as the fallible p a r t of G o d
95
71
INDEX OF SUBJECTS AND NAMES
H4
F e m a l e , i n f e r i o r i t y of t h e
Klein,
41 ff.
F e m a l e , n e u t r a l i z a t i o n of t h e
Female terminology, pejorative
Flesh
L e g u m Allegoria
(see M a n , first)
Freedom
93,
98
Froehlich, K .
77
Gartner, B .
34,
4,
70, 7 4 ,
Genesis
Liddell-Scott
83
Light-Stream
2
Logos
26, 27, 32, 33, 34 21
communion with as c r e a t o r
God,
k n o w l e d g e of
4
5, 6, 1,
16, 17
2,
3,
4,
5,
1 2 , 1 3 , 1 7 . 5 5 . 6 2 , 68 7, 8, 7 2 , 7 3 , 97
Guillaumont, A .
Machen,
J. G .
Maenad
96
62
becoming
4 5 - 4 9 , 70,
Male-female polarity,
neutralization
3. 7
c r e a t e d a f t e r t h e i m a g e of G o d
20-35, 38, 48, 64, 6 5 , 8 1 , 82, 83
Hierophant
11
Man,
c r e a t i o n of
H i g h Priest
2
Man,
different
Hippolytus
23
Spirit
Holy W a r
Philo
71
Man,
101-102
individual
58
Man,
composite
4
Man,
the
(iSitx)
26,
(stxoiv)
Innocence
27,
29, 30,
divine
53,
Inspiration, prophetic
Isis
82
56,
97
74, 75
Inspiration, Iran
33,
3, 20, 24, 5 7 55,
96-97
2
sense-percep
first
23, 28, 31 empirical
or
M a n , d u a l n a t u r e of
1 4 ff.
Man,
the earthly
22, 26, 28, 81
Man,
the generic
22,
32,
Man,
2
t h e generic e a r t h l y
33,
38,
29, 34, 88
M a n , t h e generic h e a v e n l y J e r e m i a s , J.
Man, the heavenly
22 27,
Man,
higher
Man,
i d e a of (or ideal)
3, 6, 1 7 , 2 1 , 22, 23,
nature
of
Man,
l o w e r n a t u r e of
Man,
Philo's
Judaism
Man,
t h e so-called
Man,
the
Judaism, Rabbinic K e e , H . C . 77
50
K i n g d o m of G o d ( H e a v e n )
Marriage 70, 7 4 ,
14 ff. 20, 22,
23,
30, 82
Jesus 69, 70, 74, 7 7 Jonas, H . 63, 67, 68, 70
2,4,5,12,13
29, 88
22,28,34,81,82
29, 34. 5 5 . 5 7 . 64. 6 6 . 67, 68, 70, 7 1 , 82, 87
78
actual
9, 22, 23, 25, 26, 28, 29, 30, 3 1 , 35. 36. 37. 39, 4 ° , 49, 68, 7 2 , 82, 83. 89, 92
65, 8 1 , 83, 84
( a n d Osiris)
J e r v e l l , J.
in
22, 30, 31
Homosexual
Image
term
15
the
tible
6, 35
uses of t h e
Hypothetica Idea
74
18-20
man)
70
I.
25,
Male-female polarity
Man, Heinemann,
8
1 9 , 20, 22, 23, 24,
of 34 Malherbe, A . J. 6, 25 M a n , a n d r o g y n o u s (see A n d r o g y n o u s
5 5 , 5 7 , 62
Grant, R . M .
4, 6,
Male,
7
Goodenough, E . R . Grace of G o d
5
(or t r a d i t i o n a l i s t s )
1 9 , 34, 50, 5 7 ,
63, 66-75, 7 6 , 7 8 , 80 God,
97
27. 29, 30. 3 i . 34. 3 5 . 4 9 , 5 5 , 5 7 . 62, 64, 65, 66, 82
5, 6
Gfrbrer, A , F .
4
63, 83, 96,
Literalists
Gnostic, Gnosticism
Holy
81-83
L e i s e g a n g , J.
Literal interpretation
77
5
Genus, genera
God,
29, 40,
Legatione ad G a i u m , D e
2
Gentile
90
2, 4-8, 9 5
Law
First m a n
3, 17 2 5 , 43,
use
40 ff,
of
F.-N.
Knowledge
70
Marriage,
true 67,
29
23
23 73,
sacred
Manichaeans
1 4 ff.
u s e of t h e t e r m
68
77, 11
78,
94,
95
INDEX OF SUBJECTS AND NAMES
115
Philo,
as S c r i p t u r a l e x e g e t e
Philo,
as l o y a l
1 7 , 1 8 , 36, 38, 39, 42, 43, 5 1 -
Philo,
hermeneutics
58, 6 1 , 63, 65, 70, 75, 82, 85, 90, 91
Philo,
soteriological
Messiah
78
Middle-Platonists Mind Mind,
6
man's higher
Mind, rational
Philosophy
20, 27, 28
Piety
above man
18
Mind,
t h e r u l i n g p a r t of t h e s o u l
M i n d of t h e u n i v e r s e M i n d , indivisible Mind,
Modesty
2, 1 7
Moses,
inspiration
philosophers Mystery,
the
Greek
Powers
1 9 , 23, 6 3 , 89
Prayer
101-102
Progress
6,
8-13,
62
Protology
7,
73
8-13,
34-35,
63,
Purity
67 72
Qumran
5, 40, 5 2 , 95
77
4, 7
Necessity
93
Rad,
Neo-Pythagoreans Neutralization
of
Creation
Number,
sex
74,
Salvation
of m a n
56, 5 7 ,
61
16
54 1
2, 69, S.
Schenke,
H.-M,
single)
1 6 , 26,
29,
Ophite Gnosticism
63
Opificio M u n d i , D e
4, 6, 1 9 , 8 1 - 8 3 ,
89, 90
Seneca
7,
96 2
Parousia
74, 7 7 ,
Passion(s)
8
Sense-perception,
1, 3, 1 7 , 82 54, 5 5 , 5 7 , 58, 6 1 , 62,
Passover
46
63
4
Philo, attitude toward history P h i l o , e c l e c t i c i s m of as p h i l o s o p h e r
i d e a of
84 5
7, 8
27
73
9 50-51 32,
48,
Sexual abstinence
46, 5 1 , 5 2 , 5 4 , 8 1 , 90, 91
20, 26, 27,
8
36, 3 - 39, 4 ° , 42, 43, 46, 4 , 49, 5 i , 5 2 , 5 4 . 5 6 , 5 7 . 58, 6 5 , 69, 70, 7 5 , 7 7 , 8 1 , 90, 9 1 , 92
Serpent
Passivity Patriarchs
77
12
Sexuality P a s c h e r , J.
72
Senses, sense-perception
Seven 79
76
6, 7, 9, 10
Separation
Orphism
70, 7 3 ,
3
S e l b y , D , J.
(unity,
36. 3 7 . 38. 4 9 , 50, 5 L 54- 67, 68, 70-74, 7 7 , 7 9 , 87, 88, 100 O n e , b e c o m i n g 4 9 - 5 1 , 72-74
Origen
78
Sandmel, Scripture
Oneness
20
Resurrection
75
12
P h i l o ' s u s e of
Old age
19
G. von
Reproduction
2, 6, 1 6
78
A. D.
Nothingness
Philo,
51
Questions and Answers
Hamad 1
66-70
101
Pythagoreans
Nock,
67
45-4S, 5 1 , 5 4 , 5 5 , 66, 68,
Pseudo-Clementine literature
mythology
Nature
New
84, 87 101
8
3,
83
Nag
1, 22, 38
7 - 79 2,
6
Naassenes
6
3 7 , 39, 42, 5 2 , 90-93, 9 9
Pollution
6
mysteries
Mysticism
Plato, Platonism
Primal M a n for
of
6, 90
Poimandres 85
100
Moses
5
orientation
8
Pleasure
18
16
Myth,
20
24
material or immaterial
Monad
of
Philosophers, Greek
Mind,
5
3
4, 5, 82
1 8 , 1 9 , 21
28, 29, 30
M i n d , idea of
Jew
Sexual
desire
Sexual
intercourse
53,
62,
100
(see 38,
47,
78, 94, 9 5 , 101 Shame 74-75 Simon Magus Sin 92
65,
75
23,
67,
68
Sin, o r i g i n of 3 5 , 39, S o p h i a (see W i s d o m )
90
74,
75,
n6
INDEX OF SUBJECTS AND NAMES
S o u l 1 4 , 84-87
Virgin, v i r g i n i t y
S o u l , fragment of t h e d i v i n e s o u l 17 Soul, irrational 1 4 , 1 8 , 1 9 , 22, 3 1 ,
Virgin,
32, 40-44, 6 5 , 89-93 Soul, Soul, Soul,
2
3 1 - 3 6 , 4 5 , 4 - 49, 5 , 5 3 . 55- 62, 65, 69, 85, 90
67
Superstition
62
Theodotus Tiamat
P.
term
93 used
1
7 -
as
parallel
to
53 7 2 , 73
1 7 , 5 5 , 5 7 , 62-64, 66, 68,
99
Wolfson,
H.
1, 3, 8, 9, 1 0 , 1 2 , 1 3 ,
20, 22, 25, 27, 28, 3 3 , 5 5 , 82 Woman,
c r e a t i o n of
87-88
W o m a n , t h e o c c a s i o n for m a n ' s sin 37 6
12, 7 5 , 98-101
World,
b e g i n n i n g of
World,
c a r e s of
Young, Zeller,
4
Valentinians,
75
99
Whitaker, G. H .
F. W .
19
Thyen, H.
66-72
Wondland,
77
71
Therapeutae
4,
95
Wisdom
10
75
3, 45, 47, 55, 68, 79, 93,
Wilson, R. Mcl.
3, 101
Supplicatio pro Christianis
Volker, \ V .
virgin
S t r a c k , H . L . a n d B i l l e r b e c k , P. Strecker, G .
51-55,
57, 62-64, 66
Widow,
Specialibus Legibus, D e 89 S p e c i e s (elSoq) 2 7 - 3 2 , 34 Spirit 2, 1 4 , 17 Stegmann, B. 22, 23, 27 Stoic 17 Strabo 96 Strathmann, H .
Virtue
Vita Contemplativa, De
m a t e r i a l or i m m a t e r i a l 85 pre-existenee of 85-86 rational 1 7 - 2 0 , 22, 24, 26, 8
5 1 - 5 5 , 7 3 , 96-101
becoming a
Valentinianism
63,
E.
16
77
6, 1 9